123456789101112131415161718192021222324252627282930313233343536373839404142434445464748495051525354555657585960616263646566676869707172737475767778798081828384858687888990919293949596979899100101102103104105106107108109110111112113114115116117118119120121122123124125126127128129130131132133134135136137138139140141142143144145146147148149150151152153154155156157158159160161162163164165166167168169170171172173174175176177178179180181182183184185186187188189190191192193194195196197198199200201202203204205206207208209210211212213214215216217218219220221222223224225226227228229230231232233234235236237238239240241242243244245246247248249250251252253254255256257258259260261262263264265266267268269270271272273274275276277278279280281282283284285286287288289290291292293294295296297298299300301302303304305306307308309310311312313314315316317318319320321322323324325326327328329330331332333334335336337338339340341342343344345346347348349350351352353354355356357358359360361362363364365366367368369370371372373374375376377378379380381382383384385386387388389390391392393394395396397398399400401402403404405406407408409410411412413414415416417418419420421422423424425426427428429430431432433434435436437438439440441442443444445446447448449450451452453454455456457458459460461462463464465466467468469470471472473474475476477478479480481482483484485486487488489490491492493494495496497498499500501502503504505506507508509510511512513514515516517518519520521522523524525526527528529530531532533534535536537538539540541542543544545546547548549550551552553554555556557558559560561562563564565566567568569570571572573574575576577578579580581582583584585586587588589590591592593594595596597598599600601602603604605606607608609610611612613614615616617618619620621622623624625626627628629630631632633634635636637638639640641642643644645646647648649650651652653654655656657658659660661662663664665666667668669670671672673674675676677678679680681682683684685686687688689690691692693694695696697698699700701702703704705706707708709710711712713714715716717718719720721722723724725726727728729730731732733734735736737738739740741742743744745746747748749750751752753754755756757758759760761762763764765766767768769770771772773774775776777778779780781782783784785786787788789790791792793794795796797798799800801802803804805806807808809810811812813814815816817818819820821822823824825826827828829830831832833834835836837838839840841842843844845846847848849850851852853854855856857858859860861862863864865866867868869870871872873874875876877878879880881882883884885886887888889890891892893894895896897898899900901902903904905906907908909910911912913914915916917918919920921922923924925926927928929930931932933934935936937938939940941942943944945946947948949950951952953954955956957958959960961962963964965966967968969970971972973974975976977978979980981982983984985986987988989990991992993994995996997998999100010011002100310041005100610071008100910101011101210131014101510161017101810191020102110221023102410251026102710281029103010311032103310341035103610371038103910401041104210431044104510461047104810491050105110521053105410551056105710581059106010611062106310641065106610671068106910701071107210731074107510761077107810791080108110821083108410851086108710881089109010911092109310941095109610971098109911001101110211031104110511061107110811091110111111121113111411151116111711181119112011211122112311241125112611271128112911301131113211331134113511361137113811391140114111421143114411451146114711481149115011511152115311541155115611571158115911601161116211631164116511661167116811691170117111721173117411751176117711781179118011811182118311841185118611871188118911901191119211931194119511961197119811991200120112021203120412051206120712081209121012111212121312141215121612171218121912201221122212231224122512261227122812291230123112321233123412351236123712381239124012411242124312441245124612471248124912501251125212531254125512561257125812591260126112621263126412651266126712681269127012711272127312741275127612771278127912801281128212831284128512861287128812891290129112921293129412951296129712981299130013011302130313041305130613071308130913101311131213131314131513161317131813191320132113221323132413251326132713281329133013311332133313341335133613371338133913401341134213431344134513461347134813491350135113521353135413551356135713581359136013611362136313641365136613671368136913701371137213731374137513761377137813791380138113821383138413851386138713881389139013911392139313941395139613971398139914001401140214031404140514061407140814091410141114121413141414151416141714181419142014211422142314241425142614271428142914301431143214331434143514361437143814391440144114421443144414451446144714481449145014511452145314541455145614571458145914601461146214631464146514661467146814691470147114721473147414751476147714781479148014811482148314841485148614871488148914901491149214931494149514961497149814991500150115021503150415051506150715081509151015111512151315141515151615171518151915201521152215231524152515261527152815291530153115321533153415351536153715381539154015411542154315441545154615471548154915501551155215531554155515561557155815591560156115621563156415651566156715681569157015711572157315741575157615771578157915801581158215831584158515861587158815891590159115921593159415951596159715981599160016011602160316041605160616071608160916101611161216131614161516161617161816191620162116221623162416251626162716281629163016311632163316341635163616371638163916401641164216431644164516461647164816491650165116521653165416551656165716581659166016611662166316641665166616671668166916701671167216731674167516761677167816791680168116821683168416851686168716881689169016911692169316941695169616971698169917001701170217031704170517061707170817091710171117121713171417151716171717181719172017211722172317241725172617271728172917301731173217331734173517361737173817391740174117421743174417451746174717481749175017511752175317541755175617571758175917601761176217631764176517661767176817691770177117721773177417751776177717781779178017811782178317841785178617871788178917901791179217931794179517961797179817991800180118021803180418051806180718081809181018111812181318141815181618171818181918201821182218231824182518261827182818291830183118321833183418351836183718381839184018411842184318441845184618471848184918501851185218531854185518561857185818591860186118621863186418651866186718681869187018711872187318741875187618771878187918801881188218831884188518861887188818891890189118921893189418951896189718981899190019011902190319041905190619071908190919101911191219131914191519161917191819191920192119221923192419251926192719281929193019311932193319341935193619371938193919401941194219431944194519461947194819491950195119521953195419551956195719581959196019611962196319641965196619671968196919701971197219731974197519761977197819791980198119821983198419851986198719881989199019911992199319941995199619971998199920002001200220032004200520062007200820092010201120122013201420152016201720182019202020212022202320242025202620272028202920302031203220332034203520362037203820392040204120422043204420452046204720482049205020512052205320542055205620572058205920602061206220632064206520662067206820692070207120722073207420752076207720782079208020812082208320842085208620872088208920902091209220932094209520962097209820992100210121022103210421052106210721082109211021112112211321142115211621172118211921202121212221232124212521262127212821292130213121322133213421352136213721382139214021412142214321442145214621472148214921502151215221532154215521562157215821592160216121622163216421652166216721682169217021712172217321742175217621772178217921802181218221832184218521862187218821892190219121922193219421952196219721982199220022012202220322042205220622072208220922102211221222132214221522162217221822192220222122222223222422252226222722282229223022312232223322342235223622372238223922402241224222432244224522462247224822492250225122522253225422552256225722582259226022612262226322642265226622672268226922702271227222732274227522762277227822792280228122822283228422852286228722882289229022912292229322942295229622972298229923002301230223032304230523062307230823092310231123122313231423152316231723182319232023212322232323242325232623272328232923302331233223332334233523362337233823392340234123422343234423452346234723482349235023512352235323542355235623572358235923602361236223632364236523662367236823692370237123722373237423752376237723782379238023812382238323842385238623872388238923902391239223932394239523962397239823992400240124022403240424052406240724082409241024112412241324142415241624172418241924202421242224232424242524262427242824292430243124322433243424352436243724382439244024412442244324442445244624472448244924502451245224532454245524562457245824592460246124622463246424652466246724682469247024712472247324742475247624772478247924802481248224832484248524862487248824892490249124922493249424952496249724982499250025012502250325042505250625072508250925102511251225132514251525162517251825192520252125222523252425252526252725282529253025312532253325342535253625372538253925402541254225432544254525462547254825492550255125522553255425552556255725582559256025612562256325642565256625672568256925702571257225732574257525762577257825792580258125822583258425852586258725882589259025912592259325942595259625972598259926002601260226032604260526062607260826092610261126122613261426152616261726182619262026212622262326242625262626272628262926302631263226332634263526362637263826392640264126422643264426452646264726482649265026512652265326542655265626572658265926602661266226632664266526662667266826692670267126722673267426752676267726782679268026812682268326842685268626872688268926902691269226932694269526962697269826992700270127022703270427052706270727082709271027112712271327142715271627172718271927202721272227232724272527262727272827292730273127322733273427352736273727382739274027412742274327442745274627472748274927502751275227532754275527562757275827592760276127622763276427652766276727682769277027712772277327742775277627772778277927802781278227832784278527862787278827892790279127922793279427952796279727982799280028012802280328042805280628072808280928102811281228132814281528162817281828192820282128222823282428252826282728282829283028312832283328342835283628372838283928402841284228432844284528462847284828492850285128522853285428552856285728582859286028612862286328642865286628672868286928702871287228732874287528762877287828792880288128822883288428852886288728882889289028912892289328942895289628972898289929002901290229032904290529062907290829092910291129122913291429152916291729182919292029212922292329242925292629272928292929302931293229332934293529362937293829392940294129422943294429452946294729482949295029512952295329542955295629572958295929602961296229632964296529662967296829692970297129722973297429752976297729782979298029812982298329842985298629872988298929902991299229932994299529962997299829993000300130023003300430053006300730083009301030113012301330143015301630173018301930203021302230233024302530263027302830293030303130323033303430353036303730383039304030413042304330443045304630473048304930503051305230533054305530563057305830593060306130623063306430653066306730683069307030713072307330743075307630773078307930803081308230833084308530863087308830893090309130923093309430953096309730983099310031013102310331043105310631073108310931103111311231133114311531163117311831193120312131223123312431253126312731283129313031313132313331343135313631373138313931403141314231433144314531463147314831493150315131523153315431553156315731583159316031613162316331643165316631673168316931703171317231733174317531763177317831793180318131823183318431853186318731883189319031913192319331943195319631973198319932003201320232033204320532063207320832093210321132123213321432153216321732183219322032213222322332243225322632273228322932303231323232333234323532363237323832393240324132423243324432453246324732483249325032513252325332543255325632573258325932603261326232633264326532663267326832693270327132723273327432753276327732783279328032813282328332843285328632873288328932903291329232933294329532963297329832993300330133023303330433053306330733083309331033113312331333143315331633173318331933203321332233233324332533263327332833293330333133323333333433353336333733383339334033413342334333443345334633473348334933503351335233533354335533563357335833593360336133623363336433653366336733683369337033713372337333743375337633773378337933803381338233833384338533863387338833893390339133923393339433953396339733983399340034013402340334043405340634073408340934103411341234133414341534163417341834193420342134223423342434253426342734283429343034313432343334343435343634373438343934403441344234433444344534463447344834493450345134523453345434553456345734583459346034613462346334643465346634673468346934703471347234733474347534763477347834793480348134823483348434853486348734883489349034913492349334943495349634973498349935003501350235033504350535063507350835093510351135123513351435153516351735183519352035213522352335243525352635273528352935303531353235333534353535363537353835393540354135423543354435453546354735483549355035513552355335543555355635573558355935603561356235633564356535663567356835693570357135723573357435753576357735783579358035813582358335843585358635873588358935903591359235933594359535963597359835993600360136023603360436053606360736083609361036113612361336143615361636173618361936203621362236233624362536263627362836293630363136323633363436353636363736383639364036413642364336443645364636473648364936503651365236533654365536563657365836593660366136623663366436653666366736683669367036713672367336743675367636773678367936803681368236833684368536863687368836893690369136923693369436953696369736983699370037013702370337043705370637073708370937103711371237133714371537163717371837193720372137223723372437253726372737283729373037313732373337343735373637373738373937403741374237433744374537463747374837493750375137523753375437553756375737583759376037613762376337643765376637673768376937703771377237733774377537763777377837793780378137823783378437853786378737883789379037913792379337943795379637973798379938003801380238033804380538063807380838093810381138123813381438153816381738183819382038213822382338243825382638273828382938303831383238333834383538363837383838393840384138423843384438453846384738483849385038513852385338543855385638573858385938603861386238633864386538663867386838693870387138723873387438753876387738783879388038813882388338843885388638873888388938903891389238933894389538963897389838993900390139023903390439053906390739083909391039113912391339143915391639173918391939203921392239233924392539263927392839293930393139323933393439353936393739383939394039413942394339443945394639473948394939503951395239533954395539563957395839593960396139623963396439653966396739683969397039713972397339743975397639773978397939803981398239833984398539863987398839893990399139923993399439953996399739983999400040014002400340044005400640074008400940104011401240134014401540164017401840194020402140224023402440254026402740284029403040314032403340344035403640374038403940404041404240434044404540464047404840494050405140524053405440554056405740584059406040614062406340644065406640674068406940704071407240734074407540764077407840794080408140824083408440854086408740884089409040914092409340944095409640974098409941004101410241034104410541064107410841094110411141124113411441154116411741184119412041214122412341244125412641274128412941304131413241334134413541364137413841394140414141424143414441454146414741484149415041514152415341544155415641574158415941604161416241634164416541664167416841694170417141724173417441754176417741784179418041814182418341844185418641874188418941904191419241934194419541964197419841994200420142024203420442054206420742084209421042114212421342144215421642174218421942204221422242234224422542264227422842294230423142324233423442354236423742384239424042414242424342444245424642474248424942504251425242534254425542564257425842594260426142624263426442654266426742684269427042714272427342744275427642774278427942804281428242834284428542864287428842894290429142924293429442954296429742984299430043014302430343044305430643074308430943104311431243134314431543164317431843194320432143224323432443254326432743284329433043314332433343344335433643374338433943404341434243434344434543464347434843494350435143524353435443554356435743584359436043614362436343644365436643674368436943704371437243734374437543764377437843794380438143824383438443854386438743884389439043914392439343944395439643974398439944004401440244034404440544064407440844094410441144124413441444154416441744184419442044214422442344244425442644274428442944304431443244334434443544364437443844394440444144424443444444454446444744484449445044514452445344544455445644574458445944604461446244634464446544664467446844694470447144724473447444754476447744784479448044814482448344844485448644874488448944904491449244934494449544964497449844994500450145024503450445054506450745084509451045114512451345144515451645174518451945204521452245234524452545264527452845294530453145324533453445354536453745384539454045414542454345444545454645474548454945504551455245534554455545564557455845594560456145624563456445654566456745684569457045714572457345744575457645774578457945804581458245834584458545864587458845894590459145924593459445954596459745984599460046014602460346044605460646074608460946104611461246134614461546164617461846194620462146224623462446254626462746284629463046314632463346344635463646374638463946404641464246434644464546464647464846494650465146524653465446554656465746584659466046614662466346644665466646674668466946704671467246734674467546764677467846794680468146824683468446854686468746884689469046914692469346944695469646974698469947004701470247034704470547064707470847094710471147124713471447154716471747184719472047214722472347244725472647274728472947304731473247334734473547364737473847394740474147424743474447454746474747484749475047514752475347544755475647574758475947604761476247634764476547664767476847694770477147724773477447754776477747784779478047814782478347844785478647874788478947904791479247934794479547964797479847994800480148024803480448054806480748084809481048114812481348144815481648174818481948204821482248234824482548264827482848294830483148324833483448354836483748384839484048414842484348444845484648474848484948504851485248534854485548564857485848594860486148624863486448654866486748684869487048714872487348744875487648774878487948804881488248834884488548864887488848894890489148924893489448954896489748984899490049014902490349044905490649074908490949104911491249134914491549164917491849194920492149224923492449254926492749284929493049314932493349344935493649374938493949404941494249434944494549464947494849494950495149524953495449554956495749584959496049614962496349644965496649674968496949704971497249734974497549764977497849794980498149824983498449854986498749884989499049914992499349944995499649974998499950005001500250035004500550065007500850095010501150125013501450155016501750185019502050215022502350245025502650275028502950305031503250335034503550365037503850395040504150425043504450455046504750485049505050515052505350545055505650575058505950605061506250635064506550665067506850695070507150725073507450755076507750785079508050815082508350845085508650875088508950905091509250935094509550965097509850995100510151025103510451055106510751085109511051115112511351145115511651175118511951205121512251235124512551265127512851295130513151325133513451355136513751385139514051415142514351445145514651475148514951505151515251535154515551565157515851595160516151625163516451655166516751685169517051715172517351745175517651775178517951805181518251835184518551865187518851895190519151925193519451955196519751985199520052015202520352045205520652075208520952105211521252135214521552165217521852195220522152225223522452255226522752285229523052315232523352345235523652375238523952405241524252435244524552465247524852495250525152525253525452555256525752585259526052615262526352645265526652675268526952705271527252735274527552765277527852795280528152825283528452855286528752885289529052915292529352945295529652975298529953005301530253035304530553065307530853095310531153125313531453155316531753185319532053215322532353245325532653275328532953305331533253335334533553365337533853395340534153425343534453455346534753485349535053515352535353545355535653575358535953605361536253635364536553665367536853695370537153725373537453755376537753785379538053815382538353845385538653875388538953905391539253935394539553965397539853995400540154025403540454055406540754085409541054115412541354145415541654175418541954205421542254235424542554265427542854295430543154325433543454355436543754385439544054415442544354445445544654475448544954505451545254535454545554565457545854595460546154625463546454655466546754685469547054715472547354745475547654775478547954805481548254835484548554865487548854895490549154925493549454955496549754985499550055015502550355045505550655075508550955105511551255135514551555165517551855195520552155225523552455255526552755285529553055315532553355345535553655375538553955405541554255435544554555465547554855495550555155525553555455555556555755585559556055615562556355645565556655675568556955705571557255735574557555765577557855795580558155825583558455855586558755885589559055915592559355945595559655975598559956005601560256035604560556065607560856095610561156125613561456155616561756185619562056215622562356245625562656275628562956305631563256335634563556365637563856395640564156425643564456455646564756485649565056515652565356545655565656575658565956605661566256635664566556665667566856695670567156725673567456755676567756785679568056815682568356845685568656875688568956905691569256935694569556965697569856995700570157025703570457055706570757085709571057115712571357145715571657175718571957205721572257235724572557265727572857295730573157325733573457355736573757385739574057415742574357445745574657475748574957505751575257535754575557565757575857595760576157625763576457655766576757685769577057715772577357745775577657775778577957805781578257835784578557865787578857895790579157925793579457955796579757985799580058015802580358045805580658075808580958105811581258135814581558165817581858195820582158225823582458255826582758285829583058315832583358345835583658375838583958405841584258435844584558465847584858495850585158525853585458555856585758585859586058615862586358645865586658675868586958705871587258735874587558765877587858795880588158825883588458855886588758885889589058915892589358945895589658975898589959005901590259035904590559065907590859095910591159125913591459155916591759185919592059215922592359245925592659275928592959305931593259335934593559365937593859395940594159425943594459455946594759485949595059515952595359545955595659575958595959605961596259635964596559665967596859695970597159725973597459755976597759785979598059815982598359845985598659875988598959905991599259935994599559965997599859996000600160026003600460056006600760086009601060116012601360146015601660176018601960206021602260236024602560266027602860296030603160326033603460356036603760386039604060416042604360446045604660476048604960506051605260536054605560566057605860596060606160626063606460656066606760686069607060716072607360746075607660776078607960806081608260836084608560866087608860896090609160926093609460956096609760986099610061016102610361046105610661076108610961106111611261136114611561166117611861196120612161226123612461256126612761286129613061316132613361346135613661376138613961406141614261436144614561466147614861496150615161526153615461556156615761586159616061616162616361646165616661676168616961706171617261736174617561766177617861796180618161826183618461856186618761886189619061916192619361946195619661976198619962006201620262036204620562066207620862096210621162126213621462156216621762186219622062216222622362246225622662276228622962306231623262336234623562366237623862396240624162426243624462456246624762486249625062516252625362546255625662576258625962606261626262636264626562666267626862696270627162726273627462756276627762786279628062816282628362846285628662876288628962906291629262936294629562966297629862996300630163026303630463056306630763086309631063116312631363146315631663176318631963206321632263236324632563266327632863296330633163326333633463356336633763386339634063416342634363446345634663476348634963506351635263536354635563566357635863596360636163626363636463656366636763686369637063716372637363746375637663776378637963806381638263836384638563866387638863896390639163926393639463956396639763986399640064016402640364046405640664076408640964106411641264136414641564166417641864196420642164226423642464256426642764286429643064316432643364346435643664376438643964406441644264436444644564466447644864496450645164526453645464556456645764586459646064616462646364646465646664676468646964706471647264736474647564766477647864796480648164826483648464856486648764886489649064916492649364946495649664976498649965006501650265036504650565066507650865096510651165126513651465156516651765186519652065216522652365246525652665276528652965306531653265336534653565366537653865396540654165426543654465456546654765486549655065516552655365546555655665576558655965606561656265636564656565666567656865696570657165726573657465756576657765786579658065816582658365846585658665876588658965906591659265936594659565966597659865996600660166026603660466056606660766086609661066116612661366146615661666176618661966206621662266236624662566266627662866296630663166326633663466356636663766386639664066416642664366446645664666476648664966506651665266536654665566566657665866596660666166626663666466656666666766686669667066716672667366746675667666776678667966806681668266836684668566866687668866896690669166926693669466956696669766986699670067016702670367046705670667076708670967106711671267136714671567166717671867196720672167226723672467256726672767286729673067316732673367346735673667376738673967406741674267436744674567466747674867496750675167526753675467556756675767586759676067616762676367646765676667676768676967706771677267736774677567766777677867796780678167826783678467856786678767886789679067916792679367946795679667976798679968006801680268036804680568066807680868096810681168126813681468156816681768186819682068216822682368246825682668276828682968306831683268336834683568366837683868396840684168426843684468456846684768486849685068516852685368546855685668576858685968606861686268636864686568666867686868696870687168726873687468756876687768786879688068816882688368846885688668876888688968906891689268936894689568966897689868996900690169026903690469056906690769086909691069116912691369146915691669176918691969206921692269236924692569266927692869296930693169326933693469356936693769386939694069416942694369446945694669476948694969506951695269536954695569566957695869596960696169626963696469656966696769686969697069716972697369746975697669776978697969806981698269836984698569866987698869896990699169926993699469956996699769986999700070017002700370047005700670077008700970107011701270137014701570167017701870197020702170227023702470257026702770287029703070317032703370347035703670377038703970407041704270437044704570467047704870497050705170527053705470557056705770587059706070617062706370647065706670677068706970707071707270737074707570767077707870797080708170827083708470857086708770887089709070917092709370947095709670977098709971007101710271037104710571067107710871097110711171127113711471157116711771187119712071217122712371247125712671277128712971307131713271337134713571367137713871397140714171427143714471457146714771487149715071517152715371547155715671577158715971607161716271637164716571667167716871697170717171727173717471757176717771787179718071817182718371847185718671877188718971907191719271937194719571967197719871997200720172027203720472057206720772087209721072117212721372147215721672177218721972207221722272237224722572267227722872297230723172327233723472357236723772387239724072417242724372447245724672477248724972507251725272537254725572567257725872597260726172627263726472657266726772687269727072717272727372747275727672777278727972807281728272837284728572867287728872897290729172927293729472957296729772987299730073017302730373047305730673077308730973107311731273137314731573167317731873197320732173227323732473257326732773287329733073317332733373347335733673377338733973407341734273437344734573467347734873497350735173527353735473557356735773587359736073617362736373647365736673677368736973707371737273737374737573767377737873797380738173827383738473857386738773887389739073917392739373947395739673977398739974007401740274037404740574067407740874097410741174127413741474157416741774187419742074217422742374247425742674277428742974307431743274337434743574367437743874397440744174427443744474457446744774487449745074517452745374547455745674577458745974607461746274637464746574667467746874697470747174727473747474757476747774787479748074817482748374847485748674877488748974907491749274937494749574967497749874997500750175027503750475057506750775087509751075117512751375147515751675177518751975207521752275237524752575267527752875297530753175327533753475357536753775387539754075417542754375447545754675477548754975507551755275537554755575567557755875597560756175627563756475657566756775687569757075717572757375747575757675777578757975807581758275837584758575867587758875897590759175927593759475957596759775987599760076017602760376047605760676077608760976107611761276137614761576167617761876197620762176227623762476257626762776287629763076317632763376347635763676377638763976407641764276437644764576467647764876497650765176527653765476557656765776587659766076617662766376647665766676677668766976707671767276737674767576767677767876797680768176827683768476857686768776887689769076917692769376947695769676977698769977007701770277037704770577067707770877097710771177127713771477157716771777187719772077217722772377247725772677277728772977307731773277337734773577367737773877397740774177427743774477457746774777487749775077517752775377547755775677577758775977607761776277637764776577667767776877697770777177727773777477757776777777787779778077817782778377847785778677877788778977907791779277937794779577967797779877997800780178027803780478057806780778087809781078117812781378147815781678177818781978207821782278237824782578267827782878297830783178327833783478357836783778387839784078417842784378447845784678477848784978507851785278537854785578567857785878597860786178627863786478657866786778687869787078717872787378747875787678777878787978807881788278837884788578867887788878897890789178927893789478957896789778987899790079017902790379047905790679077908790979107911791279137914791579167917791879197920792179227923792479257926792779287929793079317932793379347935793679377938793979407941794279437944794579467947794879497950795179527953795479557956795779587959796079617962796379647965796679677968796979707971797279737974797579767977797879797980798179827983798479857986798779887989799079917992799379947995799679977998799980008001800280038004800580068007800880098010801180128013801480158016801780188019802080218022802380248025802680278028802980308031803280338034803580368037803880398040804180428043804480458046804780488049805080518052805380548055805680578058805980608061806280638064806580668067806880698070807180728073807480758076807780788079808080818082808380848085808680878088808980908091809280938094809580968097809880998100810181028103810481058106810781088109811081118112811381148115811681178118811981208121812281238124812581268127812881298130813181328133813481358136813781388139814081418142814381448145814681478148814981508151815281538154815581568157815881598160816181628163816481658166816781688169817081718172817381748175817681778178817981808181818281838184818581868187818881898190819181928193819481958196819781988199820082018202820382048205820682078208820982108211821282138214821582168217821882198220822182228223822482258226822782288229823082318232823382348235823682378238823982408241824282438244824582468247824882498250825182528253825482558256825782588259826082618262826382648265826682678268826982708271827282738274827582768277827882798280828182828283828482858286828782888289829082918292829382948295829682978298829983008301830283038304830583068307830883098310831183128313831483158316831783188319832083218322832383248325832683278328832983308331833283338334833583368337833883398340834183428343834483458346834783488349835083518352835383548355835683578358835983608361836283638364836583668367836883698370837183728373837483758376837783788379838083818382838383848385838683878388838983908391839283938394839583968397839883998400840184028403840484058406840784088409841084118412841384148415841684178418841984208421842284238424842584268427842884298430843184328433843484358436843784388439844084418442844384448445844684478448844984508451845284538454845584568457845884598460846184628463846484658466846784688469847084718472847384748475847684778478847984808481848284838484848584868487848884898490849184928493849484958496849784988499850085018502850385048505850685078508850985108511851285138514851585168517851885198520852185228523852485258526852785288529853085318532853385348535853685378538853985408541854285438544854585468547854885498550855185528553855485558556855785588559856085618562856385648565856685678568856985708571857285738574857585768577857885798580858185828583858485858586858785888589859085918592859385948595859685978598859986008601860286038604860586068607860886098610861186128613861486158616861786188619862086218622862386248625862686278628862986308631863286338634863586368637863886398640864186428643864486458646864786488649865086518652865386548655865686578658865986608661866286638664866586668667866886698670867186728673867486758676867786788679868086818682868386848685868686878688868986908691869286938694869586968697869886998700870187028703870487058706870787088709871087118712871387148715871687178718871987208721872287238724872587268727872887298730873187328733873487358736873787388739874087418742874387448745874687478748874987508751875287538754875587568757875887598760876187628763876487658766876787688769877087718772877387748775877687778778877987808781878287838784878587868787878887898790879187928793879487958796879787988799880088018802880388048805880688078808880988108811881288138814881588168817881888198820882188228823882488258826882788288829883088318832883388348835883688378838883988408841884288438844884588468847884888498850885188528853885488558856885788588859886088618862886388648865886688678868886988708871887288738874887588768877887888798880888188828883888488858886888788888889889088918892889388948895889688978898889989008901890289038904890589068907890889098910891189128913891489158916891789188919892089218922892389248925892689278928892989308931893289338934893589368937893889398940894189428943894489458946894789488949895089518952895389548955895689578958895989608961896289638964896589668967896889698970897189728973897489758976897789788979898089818982898389848985898689878988898989908991899289938994899589968997899889999000900190029003900490059006900790089009901090119012901390149015901690179018901990209021902290239024902590269027902890299030903190329033903490359036903790389039904090419042904390449045904690479048904990509051905290539054905590569057905890599060906190629063906490659066906790689069907090719072907390749075907690779078907990809081908290839084908590869087908890899090909190929093909490959096909790989099910091019102910391049105910691079108910991109111911291139114911591169117911891199120912191229123912491259126912791289129913091319132913391349135913691379138913991409141914291439144914591469147914891499150915191529153915491559156915791589159916091619162916391649165916691679168916991709171917291739174917591769177917891799180918191829183918491859186918791889189919091919192919391949195919691979198919992009201920292039204920592069207920892099210921192129213921492159216921792189219922092219222922392249225922692279228922992309231923292339234923592369237923892399240924192429243924492459246924792489249925092519252925392549255925692579258925992609261926292639264926592669267926892699270927192729273927492759276927792789279928092819282928392849285928692879288928992909291929292939294929592969297929892999300930193029303930493059306930793089309931093119312931393149315931693179318931993209321932293239324932593269327932893299330933193329333933493359336933793389339934093419342934393449345934693479348934993509351935293539354935593569357935893599360936193629363936493659366936793689369937093719372937393749375937693779378937993809381938293839384938593869387938893899390939193929393939493959396939793989399940094019402940394049405940694079408940994109411941294139414941594169417941894199420942194229423942494259426942794289429943094319432943394349435943694379438943994409441944294439444944594469447944894499450945194529453945494559456945794589459946094619462946394649465946694679468946994709471947294739474947594769477947894799480948194829483948494859486948794889489949094919492949394949495949694979498949995009501950295039504950595069507950895099510951195129513951495159516951795189519952095219522952395249525952695279528952995309531953295339534953595369537953895399540954195429543954495459546954795489549955095519552955395549555955695579558955995609561956295639564956595669567956895699570957195729573957495759576957795789579958095819582958395849585958695879588958995909591959295939594959595969597959895999600960196029603960496059606960796089609961096119612961396149615961696179618961996209621962296239624962596269627962896299630963196329633963496359636963796389639964096419642964396449645964696479648964996509651965296539654965596569657965896599660966196629663966496659666966796689669967096719672967396749675967696779678967996809681968296839684968596869687968896899690969196929693969496959696969796989699970097019702970397049705970697079708970997109711971297139714971597169717971897199720972197229723972497259726972797289729973097319732973397349735973697379738973997409741974297439744974597469747974897499750975197529753975497559756975797589759976097619762976397649765976697679768976997709771977297739774977597769777977897799780978197829783978497859786978797889789979097919792979397949795979697979798979998009801980298039804980598069807980898099810981198129813981498159816981798189819982098219822982398249825982698279828982998309831983298339834983598369837983898399840984198429843984498459846984798489849985098519852985398549855985698579858985998609861986298639864986598669867986898699870987198729873987498759876987798789879988098819882988398849885988698879888988998909891989298939894989598969897989898999900990199029903990499059906990799089909991099119912991399149915991699179918991999209921992299239924992599269927992899299930993199329933993499359936993799389939994099419942994399449945994699479948994999509951995299539954995599569957995899599960996199629963996499659966996799689969997099719972997399749975997699779978997999809981998299839984998599869987998899899990999199929993999499959996999799989999100001000110002100031000410005100061000710008100091001010011100121001310014100151001610017100181001910020100211002210023100241002510026100271002810029100301003110032100331003410035100361003710038100391004010041100421004310044100451004610047100481004910050100511005210053100541005510056100571005810059100601006110062100631006410065100661006710068100691007010071100721007310074100751007610077100781007910080100811008210083100841008510086100871008810089100901009110092100931009410095100961009710098100991010010101101021010310104101051010610107101081010910110101111011210113101141011510116101171011810119101201012110122101231012410125101261012710128101291013010131101321013310134101351013610137101381013910140101411014210143101441014510146101471014810149101501015110152101531015410155101561015710158101591016010161101621016310164101651016610167 |
- -intro-
- Project Gutenberg's A Journey to the Interior of the Earth, by Jules Verne
- This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with
- almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or
- re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included
- with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org
- Title: A Journey to the Interior of the Earth
- Author: Jules Verne
- Posting Date: December 3, 2010 [EBook #3748]
- Release Date: February, 2003
- [Last updated: August 19, 2011]
- Language: English
- Character set encoding: ISO-8859-1
- *** START OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK A JOURNEY TO THE INTERIOR ***
- Produced by Norman M. Wolcott.
- -intro-
- A Journey into the Interior of the Earth
- by Jules Verne
- [Redactor's Note: The following version of Jules Verne's "Journey
- into the Interior of the Earth" was published by Ward, Lock, &Co.,
- Ltd., London, in 1877. This version is believed to be the most
- faithful rendition into English of this classic currently in the
- public domain. The few notes of the translator are located near the
- point where they are referenced. The Runic characters in Chapter III
- are visible in the HTML version of the text. The character set is
- ISO-8891-1, mainly the Windows character set. The translation is by
- Frederick Amadeus Malleson.
- While the translation is fairly literal, and Malleson (a clergyman)
- has taken pains with the scientific portions of the work and added
- the chapter headings, he has made some unfortunate emendations mainly
- concerning biblical references, and has added a few 'improvements' of
- his own, which are detailed below:
- III. "_pertubata seu inordinata,_" as Euclid has it."
- XXX. cry, "Thalatta! thalatta!" the sea! the sea! The deeply indented
- shore was lined with a breadth of fine shining sand, softly
- XXXII. hippopotamus. {as if the creator, pressed for time in the
- first hours of the world, had assembled several animals into one.}
- The colossal mastodon
- XXXII. I return to the scriptural periods or ages of the world,
- conventionally called 'days,' long before the appearance of man when
- the unfinished world was as yet unfitted for his support. {I return
- to the biblical epochs of the creation, well in advance of the birth
- of man, when the incomplete earth was not yet sufficient for him.}
- XXXVIII. (footnote), and which is illustrated in the negro
- countenance and in the lowest savages.
- XXXIX. of the geologic period. {antediluvian}
- (These corrections have kindly been pointed out by Christian S�nchez
- <chvsanchez@arnet.com.ar> of the Jules Verne Forum.)]
- ----------------------------------------------------------------------
- A JOURNEY
- INTO THE
- INTERIOR OF THE EARTH
- by
- Jules Verne
- ----------------------------------------------------------------------
- PREFACE
- THE "Voyages Extraordinaires" of M. Jules Verne deserve to be made
- widely known in English-speaking countries by means of carefully
- prepared translations. Witty and ingenious adaptations of the
- researches and discoveries of modern science to the popular taste,
- which demands that these should be presented to ordinary readers in
- the lighter form of cleverly mingled truth and fiction, these books
- will assuredly be read with profit and delight, especially by English
- youth. Certainly no writer before M. Jules Verne has been so happy in
- weaving together in judicious combination severe scientific truth
- with a charming exercise of playful imagination.
- Iceland, the starting point of the marvellous underground journey
- imagined in this volume, is invested at the present time with a
- painful interest in consequence of the disastrous eruptions last
- Easter Day, which covered with lava and ashes the poor and scanty
- vegetation upon which four thousand persons were partly dependent for
- the means of subsistence. For a long time to come the natives of that
- interesting island, who cleave to their desert home with all that
- _amor patriae_ which is so much more easily understood than
- explained, will look, and look not in vain, for the help of those on
- whom fall the smiles of a kindlier sun in regions not torn by
- earthquakes nor blasted and ravaged by volcanic fires. Will the
- readers of this little book, who, are gifted with the means of
- indulging in the luxury of extended beneficence, remember the
- distress of their brethren in the far north, whom distance has not
- barred from the claim of being counted our "neighbours"? And whatever
- their humane feelings may prompt them to bestow will be gladly added
- to the Mansion-House Iceland Relief Fund.
- In his desire to ascertain how far the picture of Iceland, drawn in
- the work of Jules Verne is a correct one, the translator hopes in the
- course of a mail or two to receive a communication from a leading man
- of science in the island, which may furnish matter for additional
- information in a future edition.
- The scientific portion of the French original is not without a few
- errors, which the translator, with the kind assistance of Mr. Cameron
- of H. M. Geological Survey, has ventured to point out and correct. It
- is scarcely to be expected in a work in which the element of
- amusement is intended to enter more largely than that of scientific
- instruction, that any great degree of accuracy should be arrived at.
- Yet the translator hopes that what trifling deviations from the text
- or corrections in foot notes he is responsible for, will have done a
- little towards the increased usefulness of the work.
- F. A. M.
- The Vicarage,
- Broughton-in-Furness
- ----------------------------------------------------------------------
- CONTENTS
- I THE PROFESSOR AND HIS FAMILY
- II A MYSTERY TO BE SOLVED AT ANY PRICE
- III THE RUNIC WRITING EXERCISES THE PROFESSOR
- IV THE ENEMY TO BE STARVED INTO SUBMISSION
- V FAMINE, THEN VICTORY, FOLLOWED BY DISMAY
- VI EXCITING DISCUSSIONS ABOUT AN UNPARALLELED EXERCISE
- VII A WOMAN'S COURAGE
- VIII SERIOUS PREPARATIONS FOR VERTICAL DESCENT
- IX ICELAND, BUT WHAT NEXT?
- X INTERESTING CONVERSATIONS WITH ICELANDIC SAVANTS
- XI A GUIDE FOUND TO THE CENTRE OF THE EARTH
- XII A BARREN LAND
- XIII HOSPITALITY UNDER THE ARCTIC CIRCLE
- XIV BUT ARCTICS CAN BE INHOSPITABLE, TOO
- XV SN�FFEL AT LAST
- XVI BOLDLY DOWN THE CRATER
- XVII VERTICAL DESCENT
- XVIII THE WONDERS OF TERRESTIAL DEPTHS
- XIX GEOLOGICAL STUDIES IN SITU
- XX THE FIRST SIGNS OF DISTRESS
- XXI COMPASSION FUSES THE PROFESSOR'S HEART
- XXII TOTAL FAILURE OF WATER
- XXIII WATER DISCOVERED
- XXIV WELL SAID, OLD MOLE! CANST THOU WORK
- IN THE GROUND SO FAST?
- XXV DE PROFUNDIS
- XXVI THE WORST PERIL OF ALL
- XXVII LOST IN THE BOWELS OF THE EARTH
- XXVIII THE RESCUE IN THE WHISPERING GALLERY
- XXIX THALATTA! THALATTA!
- XXX A NEW MARE INTERNUM
- XXXI PREPARATIONS FOR A VOYAGE OF DISCOVERY
- XXXII WONDERS OF THE DEEP
- XXXIII A BATTLE OF MONSTERS
- XXXIV THE GREAT GEYSER
- XXXV AN ELECTRIC STORM
- XXXVI CALM PHILOSOPHIC DISCUSSIONS
- XXXVII THE LIEDENBROCK MUSEUM OF GEOLOGY
- XXXVIII THE PROFESSOR IN HIS CHAIR AGAIN
- XXXIX FOREST SCENERY ILLUMINATED BY ELECTRICITY
- XL PREPARATIONS FOR BLASTING A PASSAGE
- TO THE CENTRE OF THE EARTH
- XLI THE GREAT EXPLOSION AND THE RUSH DOWN BELOW
- XLII HEADLONG SPEED UPWARD THROUGH THE HORRORS OF DARKNESS
- XLIII SHOT OUT OF A VOLCANO AT LAST!
- XLIV SUNNY LANDS IN THE BLUE MEDITERRANEAN
- XLV ALL'S WELL THAT ENDS WELL
- ----------------------------------------------------------------------
- A JOURNEY INTO THE INTERIOR OF THE EARTH
- CHAPTER I.
- THE PROFESSOR AND HIS FAMILY
- On the 24th of May, 1863, my uncle, Professor Liedenbrock, rushed
- into his little house, No. 19 K�nigstrasse, one of the oldest streets
- in the oldest portion of the city of Hamburg.
- Martha must have concluded that she was very much behindhand, for the
- dinner had only just been put into the oven.
- "Well, now," said I to myself, "if that most impatient of men is
- hungry, what a disturbance he will make!"
- "M. Liedenbrock so soon!" cried poor Martha in great alarm, half
- opening the dining-room door.
- "Yes, Martha; but very likely the dinner is not half cooked, for it
- is not two yet. Saint Michael's clock has only just struck half-past
- one."
- "Then why has the master come home so soon?"
- "Perhaps he will tell us that himself."
- "Here he is, Monsieur Axel; I will run and hide myself while you
- argue with him."
- And Martha retreated in safety into her own dominions.
- I was left alone. But how was it possible for a man of my undecided
- turn of mind to argue successfully with so irascible a person as the
- Professor? With this persuasion I was hurrying away to my own little
- retreat upstairs, when the street door creaked upon its hinges; heavy
- feet made the whole flight of stairs to shake; and the master of the
- house, passing rapidly through the dining-room, threw himself in
- haste into his own sanctum.
- But on his rapid way he had found time to fling his hazel stick into
- a corner, his rough broadbrim upon the table, and these few emphatic
- words at his nephew:
- "Axel, follow me!"
- I had scarcely had time to move when the Professor was again shouting
- after me:
- "What! not come yet?"
- And I rushed into my redoubtable master's study.
- Otto Liedenbrock had no mischief in him, I willingly allow that; but
- unless he very considerably changes as he grows older, at the end he
- will be a most original character.
- He was professor at the Johann�um, and was delivering a series of
- lectures on mineralogy, in the course of every one of which he broke
- into a passion once or twice at least. Not at all that he was
- over-anxious about the improvement of his class, or about the degree
- of attention with which they listened to him, or the success which
- might eventually crown his labours. Such little matters of detail
- never troubled him much. His teaching was as the German philosophy
- calls it, 'subjective'; it was to benefit himself, not others. He was
- a learned egotist. He was a well of science, and the pulleys worked
- uneasily when you wanted to draw anything out of it. In a word, he
- was a learned miser.
- Germany has not a few professors of this sort.
- To his misfortune, my uncle was not gifted with a sufficiently rapid
- utterance; not, to be sure, when he was talking at home, but
- certainly in his public delivery; this is a want much to be deplored
- in a speaker. The fact is, that during the course of his lectures at
- the Johann�um, the Professor often came to a complete standstill; he
- fought with wilful words that refused to pass his struggling lips,
- such words as resist and distend the cheeks, and at last break out
- into the unasked-for shape of a round and most unscientific oath:
- then his fury would gradually abate.
- Now in mineralogy there are many half-Greek and half-Latin terms,
- very hard to articulate, and which would be most trying to a poet's
- measures. I don't wish to say a word against so respectable a
- science, far be that from me. True, in the august presence of
- rhombohedral crystals, retinasphaltic resins, gehlenites, Fassaites,
- molybdenites, tungstates of manganese, and titanite of zirconium,
- why, the most facile of tongues may make a slip now and then.
- It therefore happened that this venial fault of my uncle's came to be
- pretty well understood in time, and an unfair advantage was taken of
- it; the students laid wait for him in dangerous places, and when he
- began to stumble, loud was the laughter, which is not in good taste,
- not even in Germans. And if there was always a full audience to
- honour the Liedenbrock courses, I should be sorry to conjecture how
- many came to make merry at my uncle's expense.
- Nevertheless my good uncle was a man of deep learning--a fact I am
- most anxious to assert and reassert. Sometimes he might irretrievably
- injure a specimen by his too great ardour in handling it; but still
- he united the genius of a true geologist with the keen eye of the
- mineralogist. Armed with his hammer, his steel pointer, his magnetic
- needles, his blowpipe, and his bottle of nitric acid, he was a
- powerful man of science. He would refer any mineral to its proper
- place among the six hundred [1] elementary substances now enumerated,
- by its fracture, its appearance, its hardness, its fusibility, its
- sonorousness, its smell, and its taste.
- The name of Liedenbrock was honourably mentioned in colleges and
- learned societies. Humphry Davy, [2] Humboldt, Captain Sir John
- Franklin, General Sabine, never failed to call upon him on their way
- through Hamburg. Becquerel, Ebelman, Brewster, Dumas, Milne-Edwards,
- Saint-Claire-Deville frequently consulted him upon the most difficult
- problems in chemistry, a science which was indebted to him for
- considerable discoveries, for in 1853 there had appeared at Leipzig
- an imposing folio by Otto Liedenbrock, entitled, "A Treatise upon
- Transcendental Chemistry," with plates; a work, however, which failed
- to cover its expenses.
- To all these titles to honour let me add that my uncle was the
- curator of the museum of mineralogy formed by M. Struve, the Russian
- ambassador; a most valuable collection, the fame of which is European.
- Such was the gentleman who addressed me in that impetuous manner.
- Fancy a tall, spare man, of an iron constitution, and with a fair
- complexion which took off a good ten years from the fifty he must own
- to. His restless eyes were in incessant motion behind his full-sized
- spectacles. His long, thin nose was like a knife blade. Boys have
- been heard to remark that that organ was magnetised and attracted
- iron filings. But this was merely a mischievous report; it had no
- attraction except for snuff, which it seemed to draw to itself in
- great quantities.
- When I have added, to complete my portrait, that my uncle walked by
- mathematical strides of a yard and a half, and that in walking he
- kept his fists firmly closed, a sure sign of an irritable
- temperament, I think I shall have said enough to disenchant any one
- who should by mistake have coveted much of his company.
- He lived in his own little house in K�nigstrasse, a structure half
- brick and half wood, with a gable cut into steps; it looked upon one
- of those winding canals which intersect each other in the middle of
- the ancient quarter of Hamburg, and which the great fire of 1842 had
- fortunately spared.
- [1] Sixty-three. (Tr.)
- [2] As Sir Humphry Davy died in 1829, the translator must be pardoned
- for pointing out here an anachronism, unless we are to assume that
- the learned Professor's celebrity dawned in his earliest years. (Tr.)
- It is true that the old house stood slightly off the perpendicular,
- and bulged out a little towards the street; its roof sloped a little
- to one side, like the cap over the left ear of a Tugendbund student;
- its lines wanted accuracy; but after all, it stood firm, thanks to an
- old elm which buttressed it in front, and which often in spring sent
- its young sprays through the window panes.
- My uncle was tolerably well off for a German professor. The house was
- his own, and everything in it. The living contents were his
- god-daughter Gr�uben, a young Virlandaise of seventeen, Martha, and
- myself. As his nephew and an orphan, I became his laboratory
- assistant.
- I freely confess that I was exceedingly fond of geology and all its
- kindred sciences; the blood of a mineralogist was in my veins, and in
- the midst of my specimens I was always happy.
- In a word, a man might live happily enough in the little old house in
- the K�nigstrasse, in spite of the restless impatience of its master,
- for although he was a little too excitable--he was very fond of me.
- But the man had no notion how to wait; nature herself was too slow
- for him. In April, after he had planted in the terra-cotta pots
- outside his window seedling plants of mignonette and convolvulus, he
- would go and give them a little pull by their leaves to make them
- grow faster. In dealing with such a strange individual there was
- nothing for it but prompt obedience. I therefore rushed after him.
- CHAPTER II.
- A MYSTERY TO BE SOLVED AT ANY PRICE
- That study of his was a museum, and nothing else. Specimens of
- everything known in mineralogy lay there in their places in perfect
- order, and correctly named, divided into inflammable, metallic, and
- lithoid minerals.
- How well I knew all these bits of science! Many a time, instead of
- enjoying the company of lads of my own age, I had preferred dusting
- these graphites, anthracites, coals, lignites, and peats! And there
- were bitumens, resins, organic salts, to be protected from the least
- grain of dust; and metals, from iron to gold, metals whose current
- value altogether disappeared in the presence of the republican
- equality of scientific specimens; and stones too, enough to rebuild
- entirely the house in K�nigstrasse, even with a handsome additional
- room, which would have suited me admirably.
- But on entering this study now I thought of none of all these
- wonders; my uncle alone filled my thoughts. He had thrown himself
- into a velvet easy-chair, and was grasping between his hands a book
- over which he bent, pondering with intense admiration.
- "Here's a remarkable book! What a wonderful book!" he was exclaiming.
- These ejaculations brought to my mind the fact that my uncle was
- liable to occasional fits of bibliomania; but no old book had any
- value in his eyes unless it had the virtue of being nowhere else to
- be found, or, at any rate, of being illegible.
- "Well, now; don't you see it yet? Why I have got a priceless
- treasure, that I found his morning, in rummaging in old Hevelius's
- shop, the Jew."
- "Magnificent!" I replied, with a good imitation of enthusiasm.
- What was the good of all this fuss about an old quarto, bound in
- rough calf, a yellow, faded volume, with a ragged seal depending from
- it?
- But for all that there was no lull yet in the admiring exclamations
- of the Professor.
- "See," he went on, both asking the questions and supplying the
- answers. "Isn't it a beauty? Yes; splendid! Did you ever see such a
- binding? Doesn't the book open easily? Yes; it stops open anywhere.
- But does it shut equally well? Yes; for the binding and the leaves
- are flush, all in a straight line, and no gaps or openings anywhere.
- And look at its back, after seven hundred years. Why, Bozerian,
- Closs, or Purgold might have been proud of such a binding!"
- While rapidly making these comments my uncle kept opening and
- shutting the old tome. I really could do no less than ask a question
- about its contents, although I did not feel the slightest interest.
- "And what is the title of this marvellous work?" I asked with an
- affected eagerness which he must have been very blind not to see
- through.
- "This work," replied my uncle, firing up with renewed enthusiasm,
- "this work is the Heims Kringla of Snorre Turlleson, the most famous
- Icelandic author of the twelfth century! It is the chronicle of the
- Norwegian princes who ruled in Iceland."
- "Indeed;" I cried, keeping up wonderfully, "of course it is a German
- translation?"
- "What!" sharply replied the Professor, "a translation! What should I
- do with a translation? This _is_ the Icelandic original, in the
- magnificent idiomatic vernacular, which is both rich and simple, and
- admits of an infinite variety of grammatical combinations and verbal
- modifications."
- "Like German." I happily ventured.
- "Yes," replied my uncle, shrugging his shoulders; "but, in addition
- to all this, the Icelandic has three numbers like the Greek, and
- irregular declensions of nouns proper like the Latin."
- "Ah!" said I, a little moved out of my indifference; "and is the type
- good?"
- "Type! What do you mean by talking of type, wretched Axel? Type! Do
- you take it for a printed book, you ignorant fool? It is a
- manuscript, a Runic manuscript."
- "Runic?"
- "Yes. Do you want me to explain what that is?"
- "Of course not," I replied in the tone of an injured man. But my
- uncle persevered, and told me, against my will, of many things I
- cared nothing about.
- "Runic characters were in use in Iceland in former ages. They were
- invented, it is said, by Odin himself. Look there, and wonder,
- impious young man, and admire these letters, the invention of the
- Scandinavian god!"
- Well, well! not knowing what to say, I was going to prostrate myself
- before this wonderful book, a way of answering equally pleasing to
- gods and kings, and which has the advantage of never giving them any
- embarrassment, when a little incident happened to divert conversation
- into another channel.
- This was the appearance of a dirty slip of parchment, which slipped
- out of the volume and fell upon the floor.
- My uncle pounced upon this shred with incredible avidity. An old
- document, enclosed an immemorial time within the folds of this old
- book, had for him an immeasurable value.
- "What's this?" he cried.
- And he laid out upon the table a piece of parchment, five inches by
- three, and along which were traced certain mysterious characters.
- Here is the exact facsimile. I think it important to let these
- strange signs be publicly known, for they were the means of drawing
- on Professor Liedenbrock and his nephew to undertake the most
- wonderful expedition of the nineteenth century.
- [Runic glyphs occur here]
- The Professor mused a few moments over this series of characters;
- then raising his spectacles he pronounced:
- "These are Runic letters; they are exactly like those of the
- manuscript of Snorre Turlleson. But, what on earth is their meaning?"
- Runic letters appearing to my mind to be an invention of the learned
- to mystify this poor world, I was not sorry to see my uncle suffering
- the pangs of mystification. At least, so it seemed to me, judging
- from his fingers, which were beginning to work with terrible energy.
- "It is certainly old Icelandic," he muttered between his teeth.
- And Professor Liedenbrock must have known, for he was acknowledged to
- be quite a polyglot. Not that he could speak fluently in the two
- thousand languages and twelve thousand dialects which are spoken on
- the earth, but he knew at least his share of them.
- So he was going, in the presence of this difficulty, to give way to
- all the impetuosity of his character, and I was preparing for a
- violent outbreak, when two o'clock struck by the little timepiece
- over the fireplace.
- At that moment our good housekeeper Martha opened the study door,
- saying:
- "Dinner is ready!"
- I am afraid he sent that soup to where it would boil away to nothing,
- and Martha took to her heels for safety. I followed her, and hardly
- knowing how I got there I found myself seated in my usual place.
- I waited a few minutes. No Professor came. Never within my
- remembrance had he missed the important ceremonial of dinner. And yet
- what a good dinner it was! There was parsley soup, an omelette of ham
- garnished with spiced sorrel, a fillet of veal with compote of
- prunes; for dessert, crystallised fruit; the whole washed down with
- sweet Moselle.
- All this my uncle was going to sacrifice to a bit of old parchment.
- As an affectionate and attentive nephew I considered it my duty to
- eat for him as well as for myself, which I did conscientiously.
- "I have never known such a thing," said Martha. "M. Liedenbrock is
- not at table!"
- "Who could have believed it?" I said, with my mouth full.
- "Something serious is going to happen," said the servant, shaking her
- head.
- My opinion was, that nothing more serious would happen than an awful
- scene when my uncle should have discovered that his dinner was
- devoured. I had come to the last of the fruit when a very loud voice
- tore me away from the pleasures of my dessert. With one spring I
- bounded out of the dining-room into the study.
- CHAPTER III.
- THE RUNIC WRITING EXERCISES THE PROFESSOR
- "Undoubtedly it is Runic," said the Professor, bending his brows;
- "but there is a secret in it, and I mean to discover the key."
- A violent gesture finished the sentence.
- "Sit there," he added, holding out his fist towards the table. "Sit
- there, and write."
- I was seated in a trice.
- "Now I will dictate to you every letter of our alphabet which
- corresponds with each of these Icelandic characters. We will see what
- that will give us. But, by St. Michael, if you should dare to deceive
- me--"
- The dictation commenced. I did my best. Every letter was given me one
- after the other, with the following remarkable result:
- mm.rnlls esrevel seecIde
- sgtssmf vnteief niedrke
- kt,samn atrateS saodrrn
- emtnaeI nvaect rrilSa
- Atsaar .nvcrc ieaabs
- ccrmi eevtVl frAntv
- dt,iac oseibo KediiI
- [Redactor: In the original version the initial letter is an 'm' with
- a superscore over it. It is my supposition that this is the
- translator's way of writing 'mm' and I have replaced it accordingly,
- since our typography does not allow such a character.]
- When this work was ended my uncle tore the paper from me and examined
- it attentively for a long time.
- "What does it all mean?" he kept repeating mechanically.
- Upon my honour I could not have enlightened him. Besides he did not
- ask me, and he went on talking to himself.
- "This is what is called a cryptogram, or cipher," he said, "in which
- letters are purposely thrown in confusion, which if properly arranged
- would reveal their sense. Only think that under this jargon there may
- lie concealed the clue to some great discovery!"
- As for me, I was of opinion that there was nothing at all, in it;
- though, of course, I took care not to say so.
- Then the Professor took the book and the parchment, and diligently
- compared them together.
- "These two writings are not by the same hand," he said; "the cipher
- is of later date than the book, an undoubted proof of which I see in
- a moment. The first letter is a double m, a letter which is not to be
- found in Turlleson's book, and which was only added to the alphabet
- in the fourteenth century. Therefore there are two hundred years
- between the manuscript and the document."
- I admitted that this was a strictly logical conclusion.
- "I am therefore led to imagine," continued my uncle, "that some
- possessor of this book wrote these mysterious letters. But who was
- that possessor? Is his name nowhere to be found in the manuscript?"
- My uncle raised his spectacles, took up a strong lens, and carefully
- examined the blank pages of the book. On the front of the second, the
- title-page, he noticed a sort of stain which looked like an ink blot.
- But in looking at it very closely he thought he could distinguish
- some half-effaced letters. My uncle at once fastened upon this as the
- centre of interest, and he laboured at that blot, until by the help
- of his microscope he ended by making out the following Runic
- characters which he read without difficulty.
- "Arne Saknussemm!" he cried in triumph. "Why that is the name of
- another Icelander, a savant of the sixteenth century, a celebrated
- alchemist!"
- I gazed at my uncle with satisfactory admiration.
- "Those alchemists," he resumed, "Avicenna, Bacon, Lully, Paracelsus,
- were the real and only savants of their time. They made discoveries
- at which we are astonished. Has not this Saknussemm concealed under
- his cryptogram some surprising invention? It is so; it must be so!"
- The Professor's imagination took fire at this hypothesis.
- "No doubt," I ventured to reply, "but what interest would he have in
- thus hiding so marvellous a discovery?"
- "Why? Why? How can I tell? Did not Galileo do the same by Saturn? We
- shall see. I will get at the secret of this document, and I will
- neither sleep nor eat until I have found it out."
- My comment on this was a half-suppressed "Oh!"
- "Nor you either, Axel," he added.
- "The deuce!" said I to myself; "then it is lucky I have eaten two
- dinners to-day!"
- "First of all we must find out the key to this cipher; that cannot be
- difficult."
- At these words I quickly raised my head; but my uncle went on
- soliloquising.
- "There's nothing easier. In this document there are a hundred and
- thirty-two letters, viz., seventy-seven consonants and fifty-five
- vowels. This is the proportion found in southern languages, whilst
- northern tongues are much richer in consonants; therefore this is in
- a southern language."
- These were very fair conclusions, I thought.
- "But what language is it?"
- Here I looked for a display of learning, but I met instead with
- profound analysis.
- "This Saknussemm," he went on, "was a very well-informed man; now
- since he was not writing in his own mother tongue, he would naturally
- select that which was currently adopted by the choice spirits of the
- sixteenth century; I mean Latin. If I am mistaken, I can but try
- Spanish, French, Italian, Greek, or Hebrew. But the savants of the
- sixteenth century generally wrote in Latin. I am therefore entitled
- to pronounce this, � priori, to be Latin. It is Latin."
- I jumped up in my chair. My Latin memories rose in revolt against the
- notion that these barbarous words could belong to the sweet language
- of Virgil.
- "Yes, it is Latin," my uncle went on; "but it is Latin confused and
- in disorder; "_pertubata seu inordinata,_" as Euclid has it."
- "Very well," thought I, "if you can bring order out of that
- confusion, my dear uncle, you are a clever man."
- "Let us examine carefully," said he again, taking up the leaf upon
- which I had written. "Here is a series of one hundred and thirty-two
- letters in apparent disorder. There are words consisting of
- consonants only, as _nrrlls;_ others, on the other hand, in which
- vowels predominate, as for instance the fifth, _uneeief,_ or the last
- but one, _oseibo_. Now this arrangement has evidently not been
- premeditated; it has arisen mathematically in obedience to the
- unknown law which has ruled in the succession of these letters. It
- appears to me a certainty that the original sentence was written in a
- proper manner, and afterwards distorted by a law which we have yet to
- discover. Whoever possesses the key of this cipher will read it with
- fluency. What is that key? Axel, have you got it?"
- I answered not a word, and for a very good reason. My eyes had fallen
- upon a charming picture, suspended against the wall, the portrait of
- Gr�uben. My uncle's ward was at that time at Altona, staying with a
- relation, and in her absence I was very downhearted; for I may
- confess it to you now, the pretty Virlandaise and the professor's
- nephew loved each other with a patience and a calmness entirely
- German. We had become engaged unknown to my uncle, who was too much
- taken up with geology to be able to enter into such feelings as ours.
- Gr�uben was a lovely blue-eyed blonde, rather given to gravity and
- seriousness; but that did not prevent her from loving me very
- sincerely. As for me, I adored her, if there is such a word in the
- German language. Thus it happened that the picture of my pretty
- Virlandaise threw me in a moment out of the world of realities into
- that of memory and fancy.
- There looked down upon me the faithful companion of my labours and my
- recreations. Every day she helped me to arrange my uncle's precious
- specimens; she and I labelled them together. Mademoiselle Gr�uben was
- an accomplished mineralogist; she could have taught a few things to a
- savant. She was fond of investigating abstruse scientific questions.
- What pleasant hours we have spent in study; and how often I envied
- the very stones which she handled with her charming fingers.
- Then, when our leisure hours came, we used to go out together and
- turn into the shady avenues by the Alster, and went happily side by
- side up to the old windmill, which forms such an improvement to the
- landscape at the head of the lake. On the road we chatted hand in
- hand; I told her amusing tales at which she laughed heartily. Then we
- reached the banks of the Elbe, and after having bid good-bye to the
- swan, sailing gracefully amidst the white water lilies, we returned
- to the quay by the steamer.
- That is just where I was in my dream, when my uncle with a vehement
- thump on the table dragged me back to the realities of life.
- "Come," said he, "the very first idea which would come into any one's
- head to confuse the letters of a sentence would be to write the words
- vertically instead of horizontally."
- "Indeed!" said I.
- "Now we must see what would be the effect of that, Axel; put down
- upon this paper any sentence you like, only instead of arranging the
- letters in the usual way, one after the other, place them in
- succession in vertical columns, so as to group them together in five
- or six vertical lines."
- I caught his meaning, and immediately produced the following literary
- wonder:
- I y l o a u
- l o l w r b
- o u , n G e
- v w m d r n
- e e y e a !
- "Good," said the professor, without reading them, "now set down those
- words in a horizontal line."
- I obeyed, and with this result:
- Iyloau lolwrb ou,nGe vwmdrn eeyea!
- "Excellent!" said my uncle, taking the paper hastily out of my hands.
- "This begins to look just like an ancient document: the vowels and
- the consonants are grouped together in equal disorder; there are even
- capitals in the middle of words, and commas too, just as in
- Saknussemm's parchment."
- I considered these remarks very clever.
- "Now," said my uncle, looking straight at me, "to read the sentence
- which you have just written, and with which I am wholly unacquainted,
- I shall only have to take the first letter of each word, then the
- second, the third, and so forth."
- And my uncle, to his great astonishment, and my much greater, read:
- "I love you well, my own dear Gr�uben!"
- "Hallo!" cried the Professor.
- Yes, indeed, without knowing what I was about, like an awkward and
- unlucky lover, I had compromised myself by writing this unfortunate
- sentence.
- "Aha! you are in love with Gr�uben?" he said, with the right look for
- a guardian.
- "Yes; no!" I stammered.
- "You love Gr�uben," he went on once or twice dreamily. "Well, let us
- apply the process I have suggested to the document in question."
- My uncle, falling back into his absorbing contemplations, had already
- forgotten my imprudent words. I merely say imprudent, for the great
- mind of so learned a man of course had no place for love affairs, and
- happily the grand business of the document gained me the victory.
- Just as the moment of the supreme experiment arrived the Professor's
- eyes flashed right through his spectacles. There was a quivering in
- his fingers as he grasped the old parchment. He was deeply moved. At
- last he gave a preliminary cough, and with profound gravity, naming
- in succession the first, then the second letter of each word, he
- dictated me the following:
- mmessvnkaSenrA.icefdoK.segnittamvrtn
- ecertserrette,rotaisadva,ednecsedsadne
- lacartniiilvIsiratracSarbmvtabiledmek
- meretarcsilvcoIsleffenSnI.
- I confess I felt considerably excited in coming to the end; these
- letters named, one at a time, had carried no sense to my mind; I
- therefore waited for the Professor with great pomp to unfold the
- magnificent but hidden Latin of this mysterious phrase.
- But who could have foretold the result? A violent thump made the
- furniture rattle, and spilt some ink, and my pen dropped from between
- my fingers.
- "That's not it," cried my uncle, "there's no sense in it."
- Then darting out like a shot, bowling down stairs like an avalanche,
- he rushed into the K�nigstrasse and fled.
- CHAPTER IV.
- THE ENEMY TO BE STARVED INTO SUBMISSION
- "He is gone!" cried Martha, running out of her kitchen at the noise
- of the violent slamming of doors.
- "Yes," I replied, "completely gone."
- "Well; and how about his dinner?" said the old servant.
- "He won't have any."
- "And his supper?"
- "He won't have any."
- "What?" cried Martha, with clasped hands.
- "No, my dear Martha, he will eat no more. No one in the house is to
- eat anything at all. Uncle Liedenbrock is going to make us all fast
- until he has succeeded in deciphering an undecipherable scrawl."
- "Oh, my dear! must we then all die of hunger?"
- I hardly dared to confess that, with so absolute a ruler as my uncle,
- this fate was inevitable.
- The old servant, visibly moved, returned to the kitchen, moaning
- piteously.
- When I was alone, I thought I would go and tell Gr�uben all about it.
- But how should I be able to escape from the house? The Professor
- might return at any moment. And suppose he called me? And suppose he
- tackled me again with this logomachy, which might vainly have been
- set before ancient Oedipus. And if I did not obey his call, who could
- answer for what might happen?
- The wisest course was to remain where I was. A mineralogist at
- Besan�on had just sent us a collection of siliceous nodules, which I
- had to classify: so I set to work; I sorted, labelled, and arranged
- in their own glass case all these hollow specimens, in the cavity of
- each of which was a nest of little crystals.
- But this work did not succeed in absorbing all my attention. That old
- document kept working in my brain. My head throbbed with excitement,
- and I felt an undefined uneasiness. I was possessed with a
- presentiment of coming evil.
- In an hour my nodules were all arranged upon successive shelves. Then
- I dropped down into the old velvet armchair, my head thrown back and
- my hands joined over it. I lighted my long crooked pipe, with a
- painting on it of an idle-looking naiad; then I amused myself
- watching the process of the conversion of the tobacco into carbon,
- which was by slow degrees making my naiad into a negress. Now and
- then I listened to hear whether a well-known step was on the stairs.
- No. Where could my uncle be at that moment? I fancied him running
- under the noble trees which line the road to Altona, gesticulating,
- making shots with his cane, thrashing the long grass, cutting the
- heads off the thistles, and disturbing the contemplative storks in
- their peaceful solitude.
- Would he return in triumph or in discouragement? Which would get the
- upper hand, he or the secret? I was thus asking myself questions, and
- mechanically taking between my fingers the sheet of paper
- mysteriously disfigured with the incomprehensible succession of
- letters I had written down; and I repeated to myself "What does it
- all mean?"
- I sought to group the letters so as to form words. Quite impossible!
- When I put them together by twos, threes, fives or sixes, nothing
- came of it but nonsense. To be sure the fourteenth, fifteenth and
- sixteenth letters made the English word 'ice'; the eighty-third and
- two following made 'sir'; and in the midst of the document, in the
- second and third lines, I observed the words, "rots," "mutabile,"
- "ira," "net," "atra."
- "Come now," I thought, "these words seem to justify my uncle's view
- about the language of the document. In the fourth line appeared the
- word "luco", which means a sacred wood. It is true that in the third
- line was the word "tabiled", which looked like Hebrew, and in the
- last the purely French words "mer", "arc", "mere.""
- All this was enough to drive a poor fellow crazy. Four different
- languages in this ridiculous sentence! What connection could there
- possibly be between such words as ice, sir, anger, cruel, sacred
- wood, changeable, mother, bow, and sea? The first and the last might
- have something to do with each other; it was not at all surprising
- that in a document written in Iceland there should be mention of a
- sea of ice; but it was quite another thing to get to the end of this
- cryptogram with so small a clue. So I was struggling with an
- insurmountable difficulty; my brain got heated, my eyes watered over
- that sheet of paper; its hundred and thirty-two letters seemed to
- flutter and fly around me like those motes of mingled light and
- darkness which float in the air around the head when the blood is
- rushing upwards with undue violence. I was a prey to a kind of
- hallucination; I was stifling; I wanted air. Unconsciously I fanned
- myself with the bit of paper, the back and front of which
- successively came before my eyes. What was my surprise when, in one
- of those rapid revolutions, at the moment when the back was turned to
- me I thought I caught sight of the Latin words "craterem,"
- "terrestre," and others.
- A sudden light burst in upon me; these hints alone gave me the first
- glimpse of the truth; I had discovered the key to the cipher. To read
- the document, it would not even be necessary to read it through the
- paper. Such as it was, just such as it had been dictated to me, so it
- might be spelt out with ease. All those ingenious professorial
- combinations were coming right. He was right as to the arrangement of
- the letters; he was right as to the language. He had been within a
- hair's breadth of reading this Latin document from end to end; but
- that hair's breadth, chance had given it to me!
- You may be sure I felt stirred up. My eyes were dim, I could scarcely
- see. I had laid the paper upon the table. At a glance I could tell
- the whole secret.
- At last I became more calm. I made a wise resolve to walk twice round
- the room quietly and settle my nerves, and then I returned into the
- deep gulf of the huge armchair.
- "Now I'll read it," I cried, after having well distended my lungs
- with air.
- I leaned over the table; I laid my finger successively upon every
- letter; and without a pause, without one moment's hesitation, I read
- off the whole sentence aloud.
- Stupefaction! terror! I sat overwhelmed as if with a sudden deadly
- blow. What! that which I read had actually, really been done! A
- mortal man had had the audacity to penetrate! . . .
- "Ah!" I cried, springing up. "But no! no! My uncle shall never know
- it. He would insist upon doing it too. He would want to know all
- about it. Ropes could not hold him, such a determined geologist as he
- is! He would start, he would, in spite of everything and everybody,
- and he would take me with him, and we should never get back. No,
- never! never!"
- My over-excitement was beyond all description.
- "No! no! it shall not be," I declared energetically; "and as it is in
- my power to prevent the knowledge of it coming into the mind of my
- tyrant, I will do it. By dint of turning this document round and
- round, he too might discover the key. I will destroy it."
- There was a little fire left on the hearth. I seized not only the
- paper but Saknussemm's parchment; with a feverish hand I was about to
- fling it all upon the coals and utterly destroy and abolish this
- dangerous secret, when the study door opened, and my uncle appeared.
- CHAPTER V.
- FAMINE, THEN VICTORY, FOLLOWED BY DISMAY
- I had only just time to replace the unfortunate document upon the
- table.
- Professor Liedenbrock seemed to be greatly abstracted.
- The ruling thought gave him no rest. Evidently he had gone deeply
- into the matter, analytically and with profound scrutiny. He had
- brought all the resources of his mind to bear upon it during his
- walk, and he had come back to apply some new combination.
- He sat in his armchair, and pen in hand he began what looked very
- much like algebraic formula: I followed with my eyes his trembling
- hands, I took count of every movement. Might not some unhoped-for
- result come of it? I trembled, too, very unnecessarily, since the
- true key was in my hands, and no other would open the secret.
- For three long hours my uncle worked on without a word, without
- lifting his head; rubbing out, beginning again, then rubbing out
- again, and so on a hundred times.
- I knew very well that if he succeeded in setting down these letters
- in every possible relative position, the sentence would come out. But
- I knew also that twenty letters alone could form two quintillions,
- four hundred and thirty-two quadrillions, nine hundred and two
- trillions, eight billions, a hundred and seventy-six millions, six
- hundred and forty thousand combinations. Now, here were a hundred and
- thirty-two letters in this sentence, and these hundred and thirty-two
- letters would give a number of different sentences, each made up of
- at least a hundred and thirty-three figures, a number which passed
- far beyond all calculation or conception.
- So I felt reassured as far as regarded this heroic method of solving
- the difficulty.
- But time was passing away; night came on; the street noises ceased;
- my uncle, bending over his task, noticed nothing, not even Martha
- half opening the door; he heard not a sound, not even that excellent
- woman saying:
- "Will not monsieur take any supper to-night?"
- And poor Martha had to go away unanswered. As for me, after long
- resistance, I was overcome by sleep, and fell off at the end of the
- sofa, while uncle Liedenbrock went on calculating and rubbing out his
- calculations.
- When I awoke next morning that indefatigable worker was still at his
- post. His red eyes, his pale complexion, his hair tangled between his
- feverish fingers, the red spots on his cheeks, revealed his desperate
- struggle with impossibilities, and the weariness of spirit, the
- mental wrestlings he must have undergone all through that unhappy
- night.
- To tell the plain truth, I pitied him. In spite of the reproaches
- which I considered I had a right to lay upon him, a certain feeling
- of compassion was beginning to gain upon me. The poor man was so
- entirely taken up with his one idea that he had even forgotten how to
- get angry. All the strength of his feelings was concentrated upon one
- point alone; and as their usual vent was closed, it was to be feared
- lest extreme tension should give rise to an explosion sooner or later.
- I might with a word have loosened the screw of the steel vice that
- was crushing his brain; but that word I would not speak.
- Yet I was not an ill-natured fellow. Why was I dumb at such a crisis?
- Why so insensible to my uncle's interests?
- "No, no," I repeated, "I shall not speak. He would insist upon going;
- nothing on earth could stop him. His imagination is a volcano, and to
- do that which other geologists have never done he would risk his
- life. I will preserve silence. I will keep the secret which mere
- chance has revealed to me. To discover it, would be to kill Professor
- Liedenbrock! Let him find it out himself if he can. I will never have
- it laid to my door that I led him to his destruction."
- Having formed this resolution, I folded my arms and waited. But I had
- not reckoned upon one little incident which turned up a few hours
- after.
- When our good Martha wanted to go to Market, she found the door
- locked. The big key was gone. Who could have taken it out? Assuredly,
- it was my uncle, when he returned the night before from his hurried
- walk.
- Was this done on purpose? Or was it a mistake? Did he want to reduce
- us by famine? This seemed like going rather too far! What! should
- Martha and I be victims of a position of things in which we had not
- the smallest interest? It was a fact that a few years before this,
- whilst my uncle was working at his great classification of minerals,
- he was forty-eight hours without eating, and all his household were
- obliged to share in this scientific fast. As for me, what I remember
- is, that I got severe cramps in my stomach, which hardly suited the
- constitution of a hungry, growing lad.
- Now it appeared to me as if breakfast was going to be wanting, just
- as supper had been the night before. Yet I resolved to be a hero, and
- not to be conquered by the pangs of hunger. Martha took it very
- seriously, and, poor woman, was very much distressed. As for me, the
- impossibility of leaving the house distressed me a good deal more,
- and for a very good reason. A caged lover's feelings may easily be
- imagined.
- My uncle went on working, his imagination went off rambling into the
- ideal world of combinations; he was far away from earth, and really
- far away from earthly wants.
- About noon hunger began to stimulate me severely. Martha had, without
- thinking any harm, cleared out the larder the night before, so that
- now there was nothing left in the house. Still I held out; I made it
- a point of honour.
- Two o'clock struck. This was becoming ridiculous; worse than that,
- unbearable. I began to say to myself that I was exaggerating the
- importance of the document; that my uncle would surely not believe in
- it, that he would set it down as a mere puzzle; that if it came to
- the worst, we should lay violent hands on him and keep him at home if
- he thought on venturing on the expedition; that, after all, he might
- himself discover the key of the cipher, and that then I should be
- clear at the mere expense of my involuntary abstinence.
- These reasons seemed excellent to me, though on the night before I
- should have rejected them with indignation; I even went so far as to
- condemn myself for my absurdity in having waited so long, and I
- finally resolved to let it all out.
- I was therefore meditating a proper introduction to the matter, so as
- not to seem too abrupt, when the Professor jumped up, clapped on his
- hat, and prepared to go out.
- Surely he was not going out, to shut us in again! no, never!
- "Uncle!" I cried.
- He seemed not to hear me.
- "Uncle Liedenbrock!" I cried, lifting up my voice.
- "Ay," he answered like a man suddenly waking.
- "Uncle, that key!"
- "What key? The door key?"
- "No, no!" I cried. "The key of the document."
- The Professor stared at me over his spectacles; no doubt he saw
- something unusual in the expression of my countenance; for he laid
- hold of my arm, and speechlessly questioned me with his eyes. Yes,
- never was a question more forcibly put.
- I nodded my head up and down.
- He shook his pityingly, as if he was dealing with a lunatic. I gave a
- more affirmative gesture.
- His eyes glistened and sparkled with live fire, his hand was shaken
- threateningly.
- This mute conversation at such a momentous crisis would have riveted
- the attention of the most indifferent. And the fact really was that I
- dared not speak now, so intense was the excitement for fear lest my
- uncle should smother me in his first joyful embraces. But he became
- so urgent that I was at last compelled to answer.
- "Yes, that key, chance--"
- "What is that you are saying?" he shouted with indescribable emotion.
- "There, read that!" I said, presenting a sheet of paper on which I
- had written.
- "But there is nothing in this," he answered, crumpling up the paper.
- "No, nothing until you proceed to read from the end to the beginning."
- I had not finished my sentence when the Professor broke out into a
- cry, nay, a roar. A new revelation burst in upon him. He was
- transformed!
- "Aha, clever Saknussemm!" he cried. "You had first written out your
- sentence the wrong way."
- And darting upon the paper, with eyes bedimmed, and voice choked with
- emotion, he read the whole document from the last letter to the first.
- It was conceived in the following terms:
- In Sneffels Joculis craterem quem delibat
- Umbra Scartaris Julii intra calendas descende,
- Audax viator, et terrestre centrum attinges.
- Quod feci, Arne Saknussemm.[1]
- Which bad Latin may be translated thus:
- "Descend, bold traveller, into the crater of the jokul of Sneffels,
- which the shadow of Scartaris touches before the kalends of July, and
- you will attain the centre of the earth; which I have done, Arne
- Saknussemm."
- In reading this, my uncle gave a spring as if he had touched a Leyden
- jar. His audacity, his joy, and his convictions were magnificent to
- behold. He came and he went; he seized his head between both his
- hands; he pushed the chairs out of their places, he piled up his
- books; incredible as it may seem, he rattled his precious nodules of
- flints together; he sent a kick here, a thump there. At last his
- nerves calmed down, and like a man exhausted by too lavish an
- expenditure of vital power, he sank back exhausted into his armchair.
- "What o'clock is it?" he asked after a few moments of silence.
- "Three o'clock," I replied.
- "Is it really? The dinner-hour is past, and I did not know it. I am
- half dead with hunger. Come on, and after dinner--"
- [1] In the cipher, _audax_ is written _avdas,_ and _quod_ and _quem,_
- _hod_ and _ken_. (Tr.)
- "Well?"
- "After dinner, pack up my trunk."
- "What?" I cried.
- "And yours!" replied the indefatigable Professor, entering the
- dining-room.
- CHAPTER VI.
- EXCITING DISCUSSIONS ABOUT AN UNPARALLELED ENTERPRISE
- At these words a cold shiver ran through me. Yet I controlled myself;
- I even resolved to put a good face upon it. Scientific arguments
- alone could have any weight with Professor Liedenbrock. Now there
- were good ones against the practicability of such a journey.
- Penetrate to the centre of the earth! What nonsense! But I kept my
- dialectic battery in reserve for a suitable opportunity, and I
- interested myself in the prospect of my dinner, which was not yet
- forthcoming.
- It is no use to tell of the rage and imprecations of my uncle before
- the empty table. Explanations were given, Martha was set at liberty,
- ran off to the market, and did her part so well that in an hour
- afterwards my hunger was appeased, and I was able to return to the
- contemplation of the gravity of the situation.
- During all dinner time my uncle was almost merry; he indulged in some
- of those learned jokes which never do anybody any harm. Dessert over,
- he beckoned me into his study.
- I obeyed; he sat at one end of his table, I at the other.
- "Axel," said he very mildly; "you are a very ingenious young man, you
- have done me a splendid service, at a moment when, wearied out with
- the struggle, I was going to abandon the contest. Where should I have
- lost myself? None can tell. Never, my lad, shall I forget it; and you
- shall have your share in the glory to which your discovery will lead."
- "Oh, come!" thought I, "he is in a good way. Now is the time for
- discussing that same glory."
- "Before all things," my uncle resumed, "I enjoin you to preserve the
- most inviolable secrecy: you understand? There are not a few in the
- scientific world who envy my success, and many would be ready to
- undertake this enterprise, to whom our return should be the first
- news of it."
- "Do you really think there are many people bold enough?" said I.
- "Certainly; who would hesitate to acquire such renown? If that
- document were divulged, a whole army of geologists would be ready to
- rush into the footsteps of Arne Saknussemm."
- "I don't feel so very sure of that, uncle," I replied; "for we have
- no proof of the authenticity of this document."
- "What! not of the book, inside which we have discovered it?"
- "Granted. I admit that Saknussemm may have written these lines. But
- does it follow that he has really accomplished such a journey? And
- may it not be that this old parchment is intended to mislead?"
- I almost regretted having uttered this last word, which dropped from
- me in an unguarded moment. The Professor bent his shaggy brows, and I
- feared I had seriously compromised my own safety. Happily no great
- harm came of it. A smile flitted across the lip of my severe
- companion, and he answered:
- "That is what we shall see."
- "Ah!" said I, rather put out. "But do let me exhaust all the possible
- objections against this document."
- "Speak, my boy, don't be afraid. You are quite at liberty to express
- your opinions. You are no longer my nephew only, but my colleague.
- Pray go on."
- "Well, in the first place, I wish to ask what are this Jokul, this
- Sneffels, and this Scartaris, names which I have never heard before?"
- "Nothing easier. I received not long ago a map from my friend,
- Augustus Petermann, at Liepzig. Nothing could be more apropos. Take
- down the third atlas in the second shelf in the large bookcase,
- series Z, plate 4."
- I rose, and with the help of such precise instructions could not fail
- to find the required atlas. My uncle opened it and said:
- "Here is one of the best maps of Iceland, that of Handersen, and I
- believe this will solve the worst of our difficulties."
- I bent over the map.
- "You see this volcanic island," said the Professor; "observe that all
- the volcanoes are called jokuls, a word which means glacier in
- Icelandic, and under the high latitude of Iceland nearly all the
- active volcanoes discharge through beds of ice. Hence this term of
- jokul is applied to all the eruptive mountains in Iceland."
- "Very good," said I; "but what of Sneffels?"
- I was hoping that this question would be unanswerable; but I was
- mistaken. My uncle replied:
- "Follow my finger along the west coast of Iceland. Do you see
- Rejkiavik, the capital? You do. Well; ascend the innumerable fiords
- that indent those sea-beaten shores, and stop at the sixty-fifth
- degree of latitude. What do you see there?"
- "I see a peninsula looking like a thigh bone with the knee bone at
- the end of it."
- "A very fair comparison, my lad. Now do you see anything upon that
- knee bone?"
- "Yes; a mountain rising out of the sea."
- "Right. That is Sn�fell."
- "That Sn�fell?"
- "It is. It is a mountain five thousand feet high, one of the most
- remarkable in the world, if its crater leads down to the centre of
- the earth."
- "But that is impossible," I said shrugging my shoulders, and
- disgusted at such a ridiculous supposition.
- "Impossible?" said the Professor severely; "and why, pray?"
- "Because this crater is evidently filled with lava and burning rocks,
- and therefore--"
- "But suppose it is an extinct volcano?"
- "Extinct?"
- "Yes; the number of active volcanoes on the surface of the globe is
- at the present time only about three hundred. But there is a very
- much larger number of extinct ones. Now, Sn�fell is one of these.
- Since historic times there has been but one eruption of this
- mountain, that of 1219; from that time it has quieted down more and
- more, and now it is no longer reckoned among active volcanoes."
- To such positive statements I could make no reply. I therefore took
- refuge in other dark passages of the document.
- "What is the meaning of this word Scartaris, and what have the
- kalends of July to do with it?"
- My uncle took a few minutes to consider. For one short moment I felt
- a ray of hope, speedily to be extinguished. For he soon answered thus:
- "What is darkness to you is light to me. This proves the ingenious
- care with which Saknussemm guarded and defined his discovery.
- Sneffels, or Sn�fell, has several craters. It was therefore necessary
- to point out which of these leads to the centre of the globe. What
- did the Icelandic sage do? He observed that at the approach of the
- kalends of July, that is to say in the last days of June, one of the
- peaks, called Scartaris, flung its shadow down the mouth of that
- particular crater, and he committed that fact to his document. Could
- there possibly have been a more exact guide? As soon as we have
- arrived at the summit of Sn�fell we shall have no hesitation as to
- the proper road to take."
- Decidedly, my uncle had answered every one of my objections. I saw
- that his position on the old parchment was impregnable. I therefore
- ceased to press him upon that part of the subject, and as above all
- things he must be convinced, I passed on to scientific objections,
- which in my opinion were far more serious.
- "Well, then," I said, "I am forced to admit that Saknussemm's
- sentence is clear, and leaves no room for doubt. I will even allow
- that the document bears every mark and evidence of authenticity. That
- learned philosopher did get to the bottom of Sneffels, he has seen
- the shadow of Scartaris touch the edge of the crater before the
- kalends of July; he may even have heard the legendary stories told in
- his day about that crater reaching to the centre of the world; but as
- for reaching it himself, as for performing the journey, and
- returning, if he ever went, I say no--he never, never did that."
- "Now for your reason?" said my uncle ironically.
- "All the theories of science demonstrate such a feat to be
- impracticable."
- "The theories say that, do they?" replied the Professor in the tone
- of a meek disciple. "Oh! unpleasant theories! How the theories will
- hinder us, won't they?"
- I saw that he was only laughing at me; but I went on all the same.
- "Yes; it is perfectly well known that the internal temperature rises
- one degree for every 70 feet in depth; now, admitting this proportion
- to be constant, and the radius of the earth being fifteen hundred
- leagues, there must be a temperature of 360,032 degrees at the centre
- of the earth. Therefore, all the substances that compose the body of
- this earth must exist there in a state of incandescent gas; for the
- metals that most resist the action of heat, gold, and platinum, and
- the hardest rocks, can never be either solid or liquid under such a
- temperature. I have therefore good reason for asking if it is
- possible to penetrate through such a medium."
- "So, Axel, it is the heat that troubles you?"
- "Of course it is. Were we to reach a depth of thirty miles we should
- have arrived at the limit of the terrestrial crust, for there the
- temperature will be more than 2372 degrees."
- "Are you afraid of being put into a state of fusion?"
- "I will leave you to decide that question," I answered rather
- sullenly. "This is my decision," replied Professor Liedenbrock,
- putting on one of his grandest airs. "Neither you nor anybody else
- knows with any certainty what is going on in the interior of this
- globe, since not the twelve thousandth part of its radius is known;
- science is eminently perfectible; and every new theory is soon routed
- by a newer. Was it not always believed until Fourier that the
- temperature of the interplanetary spaces decreased perpetually? and
- is it not known at the present time that the greatest cold of the
- ethereal regions is never lower than 40 degrees below zero Fahr.? Why
- should it not be the same with the internal heat? Why should it not,
- at a certain depth, attain an impassable limit, instead of rising to
- such a point as to fuse the most infusible metals?"
- As my uncle was now taking his stand upon hypotheses, of course,
- there was nothing to be said.
- "Well, I will tell you that true savants, amongst them Poisson, have
- demonstrated that if a heat of 360,000 degrees [1] existed in the
- interior of the globe, the fiery gases arising from the fused matter
- would acquire an elastic force which the crust of the earth would be
- unable to resist, and that it would explode like the plates of a
- bursting boiler."
- "That is Poisson's opinion, my uncle, nothing more."
- "Granted. But it is likewise the creed adopted by other distinguished
- geologists, that the interior of the globe is neither gas nor water,
- nor any of the heaviest minerals known, for in none of these cases
- would the earth weigh what it does."
- "Oh, with figures you may prove anything!"
- "But is it the same with facts! Is it not known that the number of
- volcanoes has diminished since the first days of creation? and if
- there is central heat may we not thence conclude that it is in
- process of diminution?"
- "My good uncle, if you will enter into the legion of speculation, I
- can discuss the matter no longer."
- "But I have to tell you that the highest names have come to the
- support of my views. Do you remember a visit paid to me by the
- celebrated chemist, Humphry Davy, in 1825?"
- "Not at all, for I was not born until nineteen years afterwards."
- "Well, Humphry Davy did call upon me on his way through Hamburg. We
- were long engaged in discussing, amongst other problems, the
- hypothesis of the liquid structure of the terrestrial nucleus. We
- were agreed that it could not be in a liquid state, for a reason
- which science has never been able to confute."
- [1] The degrees of temperature are given by Jules Verne according to
- the centigrade system, for which we will in each case substitute the
- Fahrenheit measurement. (Tr.)
- "What is that reason?" I said, rather astonished.
- "Because this liquid mass would be subject, like the ocean, to the
- lunar attraction, and therefore twice every day there would be
- internal tides, which, upheaving the terrestrial crust, would cause
- periodical earthquakes!"
- "Yet it is evident that the surface of the globe has been subject to
- the action of fire," I replied, "and it is quite reasonable to
- suppose that the external crust cooled down first, whilst the heat
- took refuge down to the centre."
- "Quite a mistake," my uncle answered. "The earth has been heated by
- combustion on its surface, that is all. Its surface was composed of a
- great number of metals, such as potassium and sodium, which have the
- peculiar property of igniting at the mere contact with air and water;
- these metals kindled when the atmospheric vapours fell in rain upon
- the soil; and by and by, when the waters penetrated into the fissures
- of the crust of the earth, they broke out into fresh combustion with
- explosions and eruptions. Such was the cause of the numerous
- volcanoes at the origin of the earth."
- "Upon my word, this is a very clever hypothesis," I exclaimed, in
- spite rather of myself.
- "And which Humphry Davy demonstrated to me by a simple experiment. He
- formed a small ball of the metals which I have named, and which was a
- very fair representation of our globe; whenever he caused a fine dew
- of rain to fall upon its surface, it heaved up into little
- monticules, it became oxydized and formed miniature mountains; a
- crater broke open at one of its summits; the eruption took place, and
- communicated to the whole of the ball such a heat that it could not
- be held in the hand."
- In truth, I was beginning to be shaken by the Professor's arguments,
- besides which he gave additional weight to them by his usual ardour
- and fervent enthusiasm.
- "You see, Axel," he added, "the condition of the terrestrial nucleus
- has given rise to various hypotheses among geologists; there is no
- proof at all for this internal heat; my opinion is that there is no
- such thing, it cannot be; besides we shall see for ourselves, and,
- like Arne Saknussemm, we shall know exactly what to hold as truth
- concerning this grand question."
- "Very well, we shall see," I replied, feeling myself carried off by
- his contagious enthusiasm. "Yes, we shall see; that is, if it is
- possible to see anything there."
- "And why not? May we not depend upon electric phenomena to give us
- light? May we not even expect light from the atmosphere, the pressure
- of which may render it luminous as we approach the centre?"
- "Yes, yes," said I; "that is possible, too."
- "It is certain," exclaimed my uncle in a tone of triumph. "But
- silence, do you hear me? silence upon the whole subject; and let no
- one get before us in this design of discovering the centre of the
- earth."
- CHAPTER VII.
- A WOMAN'S COURAGE
- Thus ended this memorable seance. That conversation threw me into a
- fever. I came out of my uncle's study as if I had been stunned, and
- as if there was not air enough in all the streets of Hamburg to put
- me right again. I therefore made for the banks of the Elbe, where the
- steamer lands her passengers, which forms the communication between
- the city and the Hamburg railway.
- Was I convinced of the truth of what I had heard? Had I not bent
- under the iron rule of the Professor Liedenbrock? Was I to believe
- him in earnest in his intention to penetrate to the centre of this
- massive globe? Had I been listening to the mad speculations of a
- lunatic, or to the scientific conclusions of a lofty genius? Where
- did truth stop? Where did error begin?
- I was all adrift amongst a thousand contradictory hypotheses, but I
- could not lay hold of one.
- Yet I remembered that I had been convinced, although now my
- enthusiasm was beginning to cool down; but I felt a desire to start
- at once, and not to lose time and courage by calm reflection. I had
- at that moment quite courage enough to strap my knapsack to my
- shoulders and start.
- But I must confess that in another hour this unnatural excitement
- abated, my nerves became unstrung, and from the depths of the abysses
- of this earth I ascended to its surface again.
- "It is quite absurd!" I cried, "there is no sense about it. No
- sensible young man should for a moment entertain such a proposal. The
- whole thing is non-existent. I have had a bad night, I have been
- dreaming of horrors."
- But I had followed the banks of the Elbe and passed the town. After
- passing the port too, I had reached the Altona road. I was led by a
- presentiment, soon to be realised; for shortly I espied my little
- Gr�uben bravely returning with her light step to Hamburg.
- "Gr�uben!" I cried from afar off.
- The young girl stopped, rather frightened perhaps to hear her name
- called after her on the high road. Ten yards more, and I had joined
- her.
- "Axel!" she cried surprised. "What! have you come to meet me? Is this
- why you are here, sir?"
- But when she had looked upon me, Gr�uben could not fail to see the
- uneasiness and distress of my mind.
- "What is the matter?" she said, holding out her hand.
- "What is the matter, Gr�uben?" I cried.
- In a couple of minutes my pretty Virlandaise was fully informed of
- the position of affairs. For a time she was silent. Did her heart
- palpitate as mine did? I don't know about that, but I know that her
- hand did not tremble in mine. We went on a hundred yards without
- speaking.
- At last she said, "Axel!"
- "My dear Gr�uben."
- "That will be a splendid journey!"
- I gave a bound at these words.
- "Yes, Axel, a journey worthy of the nephew of a savant; it is a good
- thing for a man to be distinguished by some great enterprise."
- "What, Gr�uben, won't you dissuade me from such an undertaking?"
- "No, my dear Axel, and I would willingly go with you, but that a poor
- girl would only be in your way."
- "Is that quite true?"
- "It is true."
- Ah! women and young girls, how incomprehensible are your feminine
- hearts! When you are not the timidest, you are the bravest of
- creatures. Reason has nothing to do with your actions. What! did this
- child encourage me in such an expedition! Would she not be afraid to
- join it herself? And she was driving me to it, one whom she loved!
- I was disconcerted, and, if I must tell the whole truth, I was
- ashamed.
- "Gr�uben, we will see whether you will say the same thing to-morrow."
- "To-morrow, dear Axel, I will say what I say to-day."
- Gr�uben and I, hand in hand, but in silence, pursued our way. The
- emotions of that day were breaking my heart.
- After all, I thought, the kalends of July are a long way off, and
- between this and then many things may take place which will cure my
- uncle of his desire to travel underground.
- It was night when we arrived at the house in K�nigstrasse. I expected
- to find all quiet there, my uncle in bed as was his custom, and
- Martha giving her last touches with the feather brush.
- But I had not taken into account the Professor's impatience. I found
- him shouting--and working himself up amidst a crowd of porters and
- messengers who were all depositing various loads in the passage. Our
- old servant was at her wits' end.
- "Come, Axel, come, you miserable wretch," my uncle cried from as far
- off as he could see me. "Your boxes are not packed, and my papers are
- not arranged; where's the key of my carpet bag? and what have you
- done with my gaiters?"
- I stood thunderstruck. My voice failed. Scarcely could my lips utter
- the words:
- "Are we really going?"
- "Of course, you unhappy boy! Could I have dreamed that you would have
- gone out for a walk instead of hurrying your preparations forward?"
- "Are we to go?" I asked again, with sinking hopes.
- "Yes; the day after to-morrow, early."
- I could hear no more. I fled for refuge into my own little room.
- All hope was now at an end. My uncle had been all the morning making
- purchases of a part of the tools and apparatus required for this
- desperate undertaking. The passage was encumbered with rope ladders,
- knotted cords, torches, flasks, grappling irons, alpenstocks,
- pickaxes, iron shod sticks, enough to load ten men.
- I spent an awful night. Next morning I was called early. I had quite
- decided I would not open the door. But how was I to resist the sweet
- voice which was always music to my ears, saying, "My dear Axel?"
- I came out of my room. I thought my pale countenance and my red and
- sleepless eyes would work upon Gr�uben's sympathies and change her
- mind.
- "Ah! my dear Axel," she said. "I see you are better. A night's rest
- has done you good."
- "Done me good!" I exclaimed.
- I rushed to the glass. Well, in fact I did look better than I had
- expected. I could hardly believe my own eyes.
- "Axel," she said, "I have had a long talk with my guardian. He is a
- bold philosopher, a man of immense courage, and you must remember
- that his blood flows in your veins. He has confided to me his plans,
- his hopes, and why and how he hopes to attain his object. He will no
- doubt succeed. My dear Axel, it is a grand thing to devote yourself
- to science! What honour will fall upon Herr Liedenbrock, and so be
- reflected upon his companion! When you return, Axel, you will be a
- man, his equal, free to speak and to act independently, and free to
- --"
- The dear girl only finished this sentence by blushing. Her words
- revived me. Yet I refused to believe we should start. I drew Gr�uben
- into the Professor's study.
- "Uncle, is it true that we are to go?"
- "Why do you doubt?"
- "Well, I don't doubt," I said, not to vex him; "but, I ask, what need
- is there to hurry?"
- "Time, time, flying with irreparable rapidity."
- "But it is only the 16th May, and until the end of June--"
- "What, you monument of ignorance! do you think you can get to Iceland
- in a couple of days? If you had not deserted me like a fool I should
- have taken you to the Copenhagen office, to Liffender & Co., and you
- would have learned then that there is only one trip every month from
- Copenhagen to Rejkiavik, on the 22nd."
- "Well?"
- "Well, if we waited for the 22nd June we should be too late to see
- the shadow of Scartaris touch the crater of Sneffels. Therefore we
- must get to Copenhagen as fast as we can to secure our passage. Go
- and pack up."
- There was no reply to this. I went up to my room. Gr�uben followed
- me. She undertook to pack up all things necessary for my voyage. She
- was no more moved than if I had been starting for a little trip to
- L�beck or Heligoland. Her little hands moved without haste. She
- talked quietly. She supplied me with sensible reasons for our
- expedition. She delighted me, and yet I was angry with her. Now and
- then I felt I ought to break out into a passion, but she took no
- notice and went on her way as methodically as ever.
- Finally the last strap was buckled; I came downstairs. All that day
- the philosophical instrument makers and the electricians kept coming
- and going. Martha was distracted.
- "Is master mad?" she asked.
- I nodded my head.
- "And is he going to take you with him?"
- I nodded again.
- "Where to?"
- I pointed with my finger downward.
- "Down into the cellar?" cried the old servant.
- "No," I said. "Lower down than that."
- Night came. But I knew nothing about the lapse of time.
- "To-morrow morning at six precisely," my uncle decreed "we start."
- At ten o'clock I fell upon my bed, a dead lump of inert matter. All
- through the night terror had hold of me. I spent it dreaming of
- abysses. I was a prey to delirium. I felt myself grasped by the
- Professor's sinewy hand, dragged along, hurled down, shattered into
- little bits. I dropped down unfathomable precipices with the
- accelerating velocity of bodies falling through space. My life had
- become an endless fall. I awoke at five with shattered nerves,
- trembling and weary. I came downstairs. My uncle was at table,
- devouring his breakfast. I stared at him with horror and disgust. But
- dear Gr�uben was there; so I said nothing, and could eat nothing.
- At half-past five there was a rattle of wheels outside. A large
- carriage was there to take us to the Altona railway station. It was
- soon piled up with my uncle's multifarious preparations.
- "Where's your box?" he cried.
- "It is ready," I replied, with faltering voice.
- "Then make haste down, or we shall lose the train."
- It was now manifestly impossible to maintain the struggle against
- destiny. I went up again to my room, and rolling my portmanteaus
- downstairs I darted after him.
- At that moment my uncle was solemnly investing Gr�uben with the reins
- of government. My pretty Virlandaise was as calm and collected as was
- her wont. She kissed her guardian; but could not restrain a tear in
- touching my cheek with her gentle lips.
- "Gr�uben!" I murmured.
- "Go, my dear Axel, go! I am now your betrothed; and when you come
- back I will be your wife."
- I pressed her in my arms and took my place in the carriage. Martha
- and the young girl, standing at the door, waved their last farewell.
- Then the horses, roused by the driver's whistling, darted off at a
- gallop on the road to Altona.
- CHAPTER VIII.
- SERIOUS PREPARATIONS FOR VERTICAL DESCENT
- Altona, which is but a suburb of Hamburg, is the terminus of the Kiel
- railway, which was to carry us to the Belts. In twenty minutes we
- were in Holstein.
- At half-past six the carriage stopped at the station; my uncle's
- numerous packages, his voluminous _impedimenta,_ were unloaded,
- removed, labelled, weighed, put into the luggage vans, and at seven
- we were seated face to face in our compartment. The whistle sounded,
- the engine started, we were off.
- Was I resigned? No, not yet. Yet the cool morning air and the scenes
- on the road, rapidly changed by the swiftness of the train, drew me
- away somewhat from my sad reflections.
- As for the Professor's reflections, they went far in advance of the
- swiftest express. We were alone in the carriage, but we sat in
- silence. My uncle examined all his pockets and his travelling bag
- with the minutest care. I saw that he had not forgotten the smallest
- matter of detail.
- Amongst other documents, a sheet of paper, carefully folded, bore the
- heading of the Danish consulate with the signature of W.
- Christiensen, consul at Hamburg and the Professor's friend. With this
- we possessed the proper introductions to the Governor of Iceland.
- I also observed the famous document most carefully laid up in a
- secret pocket in his portfolio. I bestowed a malediction upon it, and
- then proceeded to examine the country.
- It was a very long succession of uninteresting loamy and fertile
- flats, a very easy country for the construction of railways, and
- propitious for the laying-down of these direct level lines so dear to
- railway companies.
- I had no time to get tired of the monotony; for in three hours we
- stopped at Kiel, close to the sea.
- The luggage being labelled for Copenhagen, we had no occasion to look
- after it. Yet the Professor watched every article with jealous
- vigilance, until all were safe on board. There they disappeared in
- the hold.
- My uncle, notwithstanding his hurry, had so well calculated the
- relations between the train and the steamer that we had a whole day
- to spare. The steamer _Ellenora,_ did not start until night. Thence
- sprang a feverish state of excitement in which the impatient
- irascible traveller devoted to perdition the railway directors and
- the steamboat companies and the governments which allowed such
- intolerable slowness. I was obliged to act chorus to him when he
- attacked the captain of the _Ellenora_ upon this subject. The captain
- disposed of us summarily.
- At Kiel, as elsewhere, we must do something to while away the time.
- What with walking on the verdant shores of the bay within which
- nestles the little town, exploring the thick woods which make it look
- like a nest embowered amongst thick foliage, admiring the villas,
- each provided with a little bathing house, and moving about and
- grumbling, at last ten o'clock came.
- The heavy coils of smoke from the _Ellenora's_ funnel unrolled in the
- sky, the bridge shook with the quivering of the struggling steam; we
- were on board, and owners for the time of two berths, one over the
- other, in the only saloon cabin on board.
- At a quarter past the moorings were loosed and the throbbing steamer
- pursued her way over the dark waters of the Great Belt.
- The night was dark; there was a sharp breeze and a rough sea, a few
- lights appeared on shore through the thick darkness; later on, I
- cannot tell when, a dazzling light from some lighthouse threw a
- bright stream of fire along the waves; and this is all I can remember
- of this first portion of our sail.
- At seven in the morning we landed at Korsor, a small town on the west
- coast of Zealand. There we were transferred from the boat to another
- line of railway, which took us by just as flat a country as the plain
- of Holstein.
- Three hours' travelling brought us to the capital of Denmark. My
- uncle had not shut his eyes all night. In his impatience I believe he
- was trying to accelerate the train with his feet.
- At last he discerned a stretch of sea.
- "The Sound!" he cried.
- At our left was a huge building that looked like a hospital.
- "That's a lunatic asylum," said one of or travelling companions.
- Very good! thought I, just the place we want to end our days in; and
- great as it is, that asylum is not big enough to contain all
- Professor Liedenbrock's madness!
- At ten in the morning, at last, we set our feet in Copenhagen; the
- luggage was put upon a carriage and taken with ourselves to the
- Phoenix Hotel in Breda Gate. This took half an hour, for the station
- is out of the town. Then my uncle, after a hasty toilet, dragged me
- after him. The porter at the hotel could speak German and English;
- but the Professor, as a polyglot, questioned him in good Danish, and
- it was in the same language that that personage directed him to the
- Museum of Northern Antiquities.
- The curator of this curious establishment, in which wonders are
- gathered together out of which the ancient history of the country
- might be reconstructed by means of its stone weapons, its cups and
- its jewels, was a learned savant, the friend of the Danish consul at
- Hamburg, Professor Thomsen.
- My uncle had a cordial letter of introduction to him. As a general
- rule one savant greets another with coolness. But here the case was
- different. M. Thomsen, like a good friend, gave the Professor
- Liedenbrock a cordial greeting, and he even vouchsafed the same
- kindness to his nephew. It is hardly necessary to say the secret was
- sacredly kept from the excellent curator; we were simply
- disinterested travellers visiting Iceland out of harmless curiosity.
- M. Thomsen placed his services at our disposal, and we visited the
- quays with the object of finding out the next vessel to sail.
- I was yet in hopes that there would be no means of getting to
- Iceland. But there was no such luck. A small Danish schooner, the
- _Valkyria_, was to set sail for Rejkiavik on the 2nd of June. The
- captain, M. Bjarne, was on board. His intending passenger was so
- joyful that he almost squeezed his hands till they ached. That good
- man was rather surprised at his energy. To him it seemed a very
- simple thing to go to Iceland, as that was his business; but to my
- uncle it was sublime. The worthy captain took advantage of his
- enthusiasm to charge double fares; but we did not trouble ourselves
- about mere trifles. .
- "You must be on board on Tuesday, at seven in the morning," said
- Captain Bjarne, after having pocketed more dollars than were his due.
- Then we thanked M. Thomsen for his kindness, "and we returned to the
- Phoenix Hotel.
- "It's all right, it's all right," my uncle repeated. "How fortunate
- we are to have found this boat ready for sailing. Now let us have
- some breakfast and go about the town."
- We went first to Kongens-nye-Torw, an irregular square in which are
- two innocent-looking guns, which need not alarm any one. Close by, at
- No. 5, there was a French "restaurant," kept by a cook of the name of
- Vincent, where we had an ample breakfast for four marks each (2_s_.
- 4_d_.).
- Then I took a childish pleasure in exploring the city; my uncle let
- me take him with me, but he took notice of nothing, neither the
- insignificant king's palace, nor the pretty seventeenth century
- bridge, which spans the canal before the museum, nor that immense
- cenotaph of Thorwaldsen's, adorned with horrible mural painting, and
- containing within it a collection of the sculptor's works, nor in a
- fine park the toylike chateau of Rosenberg, nor the beautiful
- renaissance edifice of the Exchange, nor its spire composed of the
- twisted tails of four bronze dragons, nor the great windmill on the
- ramparts, whose huge arms dilated in the sea breeze like the sails of
- a ship.
- What delicious walks we should have had together, my pretty
- Virlandaise and I, along the harbour where the two-deckers and the
- frigate slept peaceably by the red roofing of the warehouse, by the
- green banks of the strait, through the deep shades of the trees
- amongst which the fort is half concealed, where the guns are
- thrusting out their black throats between branches of alder and
- willow.
- But, alas! Gr�uben was far away; and I never hoped to see her again.
- But if my uncle felt no attraction towards these romantic scenes he
- was very much struck with the aspect of a certain church spire
- situated in the island of Amak, which forms the south-west quarter of
- Copenhagen.
- I was ordered to direct my feet that way; I embarked on a small
- steamer which plies on the canals, and in a few minutes she touched
- the quay of the dockyard.
- After crossing a few narrow streets where some convicts, in trousers
- half yellow and half grey, were at work under the orders of the
- gangers, we arrived at the Vor Frelsers Kirk. There was nothing
- remarkable about the church; but there was a reason why its tall
- spire had attracted the Professor's attention. Starting from the top
- of the tower, an external staircase wound around the spire, the
- spirals circling up into the sky.
- "Let us get to the top," said my uncle.
- "I shall be dizzy," I said.
- "The more reason why we should go up; we must get used to it."
- "But--"
- "Come, I tell you; don't waste our time."
- I had to obey. A keeper who lived at the other end of the street
- handed us the key, and the ascent began.
- My uncle went ahead with a light step. I followed him not without
- alarm, for my head was very apt to feel dizzy; I possessed neither
- the equilibrium of an eagle nor his fearless nature.
- As long as we were protected on the inside of the winding staircase
- up the tower, all was well enough; but after toiling up a hundred and
- fifty steps the fresh air came to salute my face, and we were on the
- leads of the tower. There the aerial staircase began its gyrations,
- only guarded by a thin iron rail, and the narrowing steps seemed to
- ascend into infinite space!
- "Never shall I be able to do it," I said.
- "Don't be a coward; come up, sir"; said my uncle with the coldest
- cruelty.
- I had to follow, clutching at every step. The keen air made me giddy;
- I felt the spire rocking with every gust of wind; my knees began to
- fail; soon I was crawling on my knees, then creeping on my stomach; I
- closed my eyes; I seemed to be lost in space.
- At last I reached the apex, with the assistance of my uncle dragging
- me up by the collar.
- "Look down!" he cried. "Look down well! You must take a lesson
- in abysses."
- I opened my eyes. I saw houses squashed flat as if they had all
- fallen down from the skies; a smoke fog seemed to drown them. Over my
- head ragged clouds were drifting past, and by an optical inversion
- they seemed stationary, while the steeple, the ball and I were all
- spinning along with fantastic speed. Far away on one side was the
- green country, on the other the sea sparkled, bathed in sunlight. The
- Sound stretched away to Elsinore, dotted with a few white sails, like
- sea-gulls' wings; and in the misty east and away to the north-east
- lay outstretched the faintly-shadowed shores of Sweden. All this
- immensity of space whirled and wavered, fluctuating beneath my eyes.
- But I was compelled to rise, to stand up, to look. My first lesson in
- dizziness lasted an hour. When I got permission to come down and feel
- the solid street pavements I was afflicted with severe lumbago.
- "To-morrow we will do it again," said the Professor.
- And it was so; for five days in succession, I was obliged to undergo
- this anti-vertiginous exercise; and whether I would or not, I made
- some improvement in the art of "lofty contemplations."
- CHAPTER IX.
- ICELAND! BUT WHAT NEXT?
- The day for our departure arrived. The day before it our kind friend
- M. Thomsen brought us letters of introduction to Count Trampe, the
- Governor of Iceland, M. Picturssen, the bishop's suffragan, and M.
- Finsen, mayor of Rejkiavik. My uncle expressed his gratitude by
- tremendous compressions of both his hands.
- On the 2nd, at six in the evening, all our precious baggage being
- safely on board the _Valkyria,_ the captain took us into a very
- narrow cabin.
- "Is the wind favourable?" my uncle asked.
- "Excellent," replied Captain Bjarne; "a sou'-easter. We shall pass
- down the Sound full speed, with all sails set."
- In a few minutes the schooner, under her mizen, brigantine, topsail,
- and topgallant sail, loosed from her moorings and made full sail
- through the straits. In an hour the capital of Denmark seemed to sink
- below the distant waves, and the _Valkyria_ was skirting the coast by
- Elsinore. In my nervous frame of mind I expected to see the ghost of
- Hamlet wandering on the legendary castle terrace.
- "Sublime madman!" I said, "no doubt you would approve of our
- expedition. Perhaps you would keep us company to the centre of the
- globe, to find the solution of your eternal doubts."
- But there was no ghostly shape upon the ancient walls. Indeed, the
- castle is much younger than the heroic prince of Denmark. It now
- answers the purpose of a sumptuous lodge for the doorkeeper of the
- straits of the Sound, before which every year there pass fifteen
- thousand ships of all nations.
- The castle of Kronsberg soon disappeared in the mist, as well as the
- tower of Helsingborg, built on the Swedish coast, and the schooner
- passed lightly on her way urged by the breezes of the Cattegat.
- The _Valkyria_ was a splendid sailer, but on a sailing vessel you can
- place no dependence. She was taking to Rejkiavik coal, household
- goods, earthenware, woollen clothing, and a cargo of wheat. The crew
- consisted of five men, all Danes.
- "How long will the passage take?" my uncle asked.
- "Ten days," the captain replied, "if we don't meet a nor'-wester in
- passing the Faroes."
- "But are you not subject to considerable delays?"
- "No, M. Liedenbrock, don't be uneasy, we shall get there in very good
- time."
- At evening the schooner doubled the Skaw at the northern point of
- Denmark, in the night passed the Skager Rack, skirted Norway by Cape
- Lindness, and entered the North Sea.
- In two days more we sighted the coast of Scotland near Peterhead, and
- the _Valkyria_ turned her lead towards the Faroe Islands, passing
- between the Orkneys and Shetlands.
- Soon the schooner encountered the great Atlantic swell; she had to
- tack against the north wind, and reached the Faroes only with some
- difficulty. On the 8th the captain made out Myganness, the
- southernmost of these islands, and from that moment took a straight
- course for Cape Portland, the most southerly point of Iceland.
- The passage was marked by nothing unusual. I bore the troubles of the
- sea pretty well; my uncle, to his own intense disgust, and his
- greater shame, was ill all through the voyage.
- He therefore was unable to converse with the captain about Sn�fell,
- the way to get to it, the facilities for transport, he was obliged to
- put off these inquiries until his arrival, and spent all his time at
- full length in his cabin, of which the timbers creaked and shook with
- every pitch she took. It must be confessed he was not undeserving of
- his punishment.
- On the 11th we reached Cape Portland. The clear open weather gave us
- a good view of Myrdals jokul, which overhangs it. The cape is merely
- a low hill with steep sides, standing lonely by the beach.
- The _Valkyria_ kept at some distance from the coast, taking a
- westerly course amidst great shoals of whales and sharks. Soon we
- came in sight of an enormous perforated rock, through which the sea
- dashed furiously. The Westman islets seemed to rise out of the ocean
- like a group of rocks in a liquid plain. From that time the schooner
- took a wide berth and swept at a great distance round Cape
- Rejkianess, which forms the western point of Iceland.
- The rough sea prevented my uncle from coming on deck to admire these
- shattered and surf-beaten coasts.
- Forty-eight hours after, coming out of a storm which forced the
- schooner to scud under bare poles, we sighted east of us the beacon
- on Cape Skagen, where dangerous rocks extend far away seaward. An
- Icelandic pilot came on board, and in three hours the _Valkyria_
- dropped her anchor before Rejkiavik, in Faxa Bay.
- The Professor at last emerged from his cabin, rather pale and
- wretched-looking, but still full of enthusiasm, and with ardent
- satisfaction shining in his eyes.
- The population of the town, wonderfully interested in the arrival of
- a vessel from which every one expected something, formed in groups
- upon the quay.
- My uncle left in haste his floating prison, or rather hospital. But
- before quitting the deck of the schooner he dragged me forward, and
- pointing with outstretched finger north of the bay at a distant
- mountain terminating in a double peak, a pair of cones covered with
- perpetual snow, he cried:
- "Sn�fell! Sn�fell!"
- Then recommending me, by an impressive gesture, to keep silence, he
- went into the boat which awaited him. I followed, and presently we
- were treading the soil of Iceland.
- The first man we saw was a good-looking fellow enough, in a general's
- uniform. Yet he was not a general but a magistrate, the Governor of
- the island, M. le Baron Trampe himself. The Professor was soon aware
- of the presence he was in. He delivered him his letters from
- Copenhagen, and then followed a short conversation in the Danish
- language, the purport of which I was quite ignorant of, and for a
- very good reason. But the result of this first conversation was, that
- Baron Trampe placed himself entirely at the service of Professor
- Liedenbrock.
- My uncle was just as courteously received by the mayor, M. Finsen,
- whose appearance was as military, and disposition and office as
- pacific, as the Governor's.
- As for the bishop's suffragan, M. Picturssen, he was at that moment
- engaged on an episcopal visitation in the north. For the time we must
- be resigned to wait for the honour of being presented to him. But M.
- Fridrikssen, professor of natural sciences at the school of
- Rejkiavik, was a delightful man, and his friendship became very
- precious to me. This modest philosopher spoke only Danish and Latin.
- He came to proffer me his good offices in the language of Horace, and
- I felt that we were made to understand each other. In fact he was the
- only person in Iceland with whom I could converse at all.
- This good-natured gentleman made over to us two of the three rooms
- which his house contained, and we were soon installed in it with all
- our luggage, the abundance of which rather astonished the good people
- of Rejkiavik.
- "Well, Axel," said my uncle, "we are getting on, and now the worst is
- over."
- "The worst!" I said, astonished.
- "To be sure, now we have nothing to do but go down."
- "Oh, if that is all, you are quite right; but after all, when we have
- gone down, we shall have to get up again, I suppose?"
- "Oh I don't trouble myself about that. Come, there's no time to lose;
- I am going to the library. Perhaps there is some manuscript of
- Saknussemm's there, and I should be glad to consult it."
- "Well, while you are there I will go into the town. Won't you?"
- "Oh, that is very uninteresting to me. It is not what is upon this
- island, but what is underneath, that interests me."
- I went out, and wandered wherever chance took me.
- It would not be easy to lose your way in Rejkiavik. I was therefore
- under no necessity to inquire the road, which exposes one to mistakes
- when the only medium of intercourse is gesture.
- The town extends along a low and marshy level, between two hills. An
- immense bed of lava bounds it on one side, and falls gently towards
- the sea. On the other extends the vast bay of Faxa, shut in at the
- north by the enormous glacier of the Sn�fell, and of which the
- _Valkyria_ was for the time the only occupant. Usually the English
- and French conservators of fisheries moor in this bay, but just then
- they were cruising about the western coasts of the island.
- The longest of the only two streets that Rejkiavik possesses was
- parallel with the beach. Here live the merchants and traders, in
- wooden cabins made of red planks set horizontally; the other street,
- running west, ends at the little lake between the house of the bishop
- and other non-commercial people.
- I had soon explored these melancholy ways; here and there I got a
- glimpse of faded turf, looking like a worn-out bit of carpet, or some
- appearance of a kitchen garden, the sparse vegetables of which
- (potatoes, cabbages, and lettuces), would have figured appropriately
- upon a Lilliputian table. A few sickly wallflowers were trying to
- enjoy the air and sunshine.
- About the middle of the tin-commercial street I found the public
- cemetery, inclosed with a mud wall, and where there seemed plenty of
- room.
- Then a few steps brought me to the Governor's house, a but compared
- with the town hall of Hamburg, a palace in comparison with the cabins
- of the Icelandic population.
- Between the little lake and the town the church is built in the
- Protestant style, of calcined stones extracted out of the volcanoes
- by their own labour and at their own expense; in high westerly winds
- it was manifest that the red tiles of the roof would be scattered in
- the air, to the great danger of the faithful worshippers.
- On a neighbouring hill I perceived the national school, where, as I
- was informed later by our host, were taught Hebrew, English, French,
- and Danish, four languages of which, with shame I confess it, I don't
- know a single word; after an examination I should have had to stand
- last of the forty scholars educated at this little college, and I
- should have been held unworthy to sleep along with them in one of
- those little double closets, where more delicate youths would have
- died of suffocation the very first night.
- In three hours I had seen not only the town but its environs. The
- general aspect was wonderfully dull. No trees, and scarcely any
- vegetation. Everywhere bare rocks, signs of volcanic action. The
- Icelandic huts are made of earth and turf, and the walls slope
- inward; they rather resemble roofs placed on the ground. But then
- these roofs are meadows of comparative fertility. Thanks to the
- internal heat, the grass grows on them to some degree of perfection.
- It is carefully mown in the hay season; if it were not, the horses
- would come to pasture on these green abodes.
- In my excursion I met but few people. On returning to the main street
- I found the greater part of the population busied in drying, salting,
- and putting on board codfish, their chief export. The men looked like
- robust but heavy, blond Germans with pensive eyes, conscious of being
- far removed from their fellow creatures, poor exiles relegated to
- this land of ice, poor creatures who should have been Esquimaux,
- since nature had condemned them to live only just outside the arctic
- circle! In vain did I try to detect a smile upon their lips;
- sometimes by a spasmodic and involuntary contraction of the muscles
- they seemed to laugh, but they never smiled.
- Their costume consisted of a coarse jacket of black woollen cloth
- called in Scandinavian lands a 'vadmel,' a hat with a very broad
- brim, trousers with a narrow edge of red, and a bit of leather rolled
- round the foot for shoes.
- The women looked as sad and as resigned as the men; their faces were
- agreeable but expressionless, and they wore gowns and petticoats of
- dark 'vadmel'; as maidens, they wore over their braided hair a little
- knitted brown cap; when married, they put around their heads a
- coloured handkerchief, crowned with a peak of white linen.
- After a good walk I returned to M. Fridrikssen's house, where I found
- my uncle already in his host's company.
- CHAPTER X.
- INTERESTING CONVERSATIONS WITH ICELANDIC SAVANTS
- Dinner was ready. Professor Liedenbrock devoured his portion
- voraciously, for his compulsory fast on board had converted his
- stomach into a vast unfathomable gulf. There was nothing remarkable
- in the meal itself; but the hospitality of our host, more Danish than
- Icelandic, reminded me of the heroes of old. It was evident that we
- were more at home than he was himself.
- The conversation was carried on in the vernacular tongue, which my
- uncle mixed with German and M. Fridrikssen with Latin for my benefit.
- It turned upon scientific questions as befits philosophers; but
- Professor Liedenbrock was excessively reserved, and at every sentence
- spoke to me with his eyes, enjoining the most absolute silence upon
- our plans.
- In the first place M. Fridrikssen wanted to know what success my
- uncle had had at the library.
- "Your library! why there is nothing but a few tattered books upon
- almost deserted shelves."
- "Indeed!" replied M. Fridrikssen, "why we possess eight thousand
- volumes, many of them valuable and scarce, works in the old
- Scandinavian language, and we have all the novelties that Copenhagen
- sends us every year."
- "Where do you keep your eight thousand volumes? For my part--"
- "Oh, M. Liedenbrock, they are all over the country. In this icy
- region we are fond of study. There is not a farmer nor a fisherman
- that cannot read and does not read. Our principle is, that books,
- instead of growing mouldy behind an iron grating, should be worn out
- under the eyes of many readers. Therefore, these volumes are passed
- from one to another, read over and over, referred to again and again;
- and it often happens that they find their way back to their shelves
- only after an absence of a year or two."
- "And in the meantime," said my uncle rather spitefully, "strangers--"
- "Well, what would you have? Foreigners have their libraries at home,
- and the first essential for labouring people is that they should be
- educated. I repeat to you the love of reading runs in Icelandic
- blood. In 1816 we founded a prosperous literary society; learned
- strangers think themselves honoured in becoming members of it. It
- publishes books which educate our fellow-countrymen, and do the
- country great service. If you will consent to be a corresponding
- member, Herr Liedenbrock, you will be giving us great pleasure."
- My uncle, who had already joined about a hundred learned societies,
- accepted with a grace which evidently touched M. Fridrikssen.
- "Now," said he, "will you be kind enough to tell me what books you
- hoped to find in our library and I may perhaps enable you to consult
- them?"
- My uncle's eyes and mine met. He hesitated. This direct question went
- to the root of the matter. But after a moment's reflection he decided
- on speaking.
- "Monsieur Fridrikssen, I wished to know if amongst your ancient books
- you possessed any of the works of Arne Saknussemm?"
- "Arne Saknussemm!" replied the Rejkiavik professor. "You mean that
- learned sixteenth century savant, a naturalist, a chemist, and a
- traveller?"
- "Just so!"
- "One of the glories of Icelandic literature and science?"
- "That's the man."
- "An illustrious man anywhere!"
- "Quite so."
- "And whose courage was equal to his genius!"
- "I see that you know him well."
- My uncle was bathed in delight at hearing his hero thus described. He
- feasted his eyes upon M. Fridrikssen's face.
- "Well," he cried, "where are his works?"
- "His works, we have them not."
- "What--not in Iceland?"
- "They are neither in Iceland nor anywhere else."
- "Why is that?"
- "Because Arne Saknussemm was persecuted for heresy, and in 1573 his
- books were burned by the hands of the common hangman."
- "Very good! Excellent!" cried my uncle, to the great scandal of the
- professor of natural history.
- "What!" he cried.
- "Yes, yes; now it is all clear, now it is all unravelled; and I see
- why Saknussemm, put into the Index Expurgatorius, and compelled to
- hide the discoveries made by his genius, was obliged to bury in an
- incomprehensible cryptogram the secret--"
- "What secret?" asked M. Fridrikssen, starting.
- "Oh, just a secret which--" my uncle stammered.
- "Have you some private document in your possession?" asked our host.
- "No; I was only supposing a case."
- "Oh, very well," answered M. Fridrikssen, who was kind enough not to
- pursue the subject when he had noticed the embarrassment of his
- friend. "I hope you will not leave our island until you have seen
- some of its mineralogical wealth."
- "Certainly," replied my uncle; "but I am rather late; or have not
- others been here before me?"
- "Yes, Herr Liedenbrock; the labours of MM. Olafsen and Povelsen,
- pursued by order of the king, the researches of Tro�l the scientific
- mission of MM. Gaimard and Robert on the French corvette _La
- Recherche,_ [1] and lately the observations of scientific men who
- came in the _Reine Hortense,_ have added materially to our knowledge
- of Iceland. But I assure you there is plenty left."
- "Do you think so?" said my uncle, pretending to look very modest, and
- trying to hide the curiosity was flashing out of his eyes.
- "Oh, yes; how many mountains, glaciers, and volcanoes there are to
- study, which are as yet but imperfectly known! Then, without going
- any further, that mountain in the horizon. That is Sn�fell."
- "Ah!" said my uncle, as coolly as he was able, "is that Sn�fell?"
- "Yes; one of the most curious volcanoes, and the crater of which has
- scarcely ever been visited."
- "Is it extinct?"
- "Oh, yes; more than five hundred years."
- "Well," replied my uncle, who was frantically locking his legs together
- to keep himself from jumping up in the air, "that is where I mean to
- begin my geological studies, there on that Seffel--Fessel--what do you
- call it?"
- "Sn�fell," replied the excellent M. Fridrikssen.
- This part of the conversation was in Latin; I had understood every
- word of it, and I could hardly conceal my amusement at seeing my
- uncle trying to keep down the excitement and satisfaction which were
- brimming over in every limb and every feature. He tried hard to put
- on an innocent little expression of simplicity; but it looked like a
- diabolical grin.
- [1] _Recherche_ was sent out in 1835 by Admiral Duperr� to learn the
- fate of the lost expedition of M. de Blosseville in the _Lilloise_
- which has never been heard of.
- "Yes," said he, "your words decide me. We will try to scale that
- Sn�fell; perhaps even we may pursue our studies in its crater!"
- "I am very sorry," said M. Fridrikssen, "that my engagements will not
- allow me to absent myself, or I would have accompanied you myself
- with both pleasure and profit."
- "Oh, no, no!" replied my uncle with great animation, "we would not
- disturb any one for the world, M. Fridrikssen. Still, I thank you
- with all my heart: the company of such a talented man would have been
- very serviceable, but the duties of your profession--"
- I am glad to think that our host, in the innocence of his Icelandic
- soul, was blind to the transparent artifices of my uncle.
- "I very much approve of your beginning with that volcano, M.
- Liedenbrock. You will gather a harvest of interesting observations.
- But, tell me, how do you expect to get to the peninsula of Sn�fell?"
- "By sea, crossing the bay. That's the most direct way."
- "No doubt; but it is impossible."
- "Why?"
- "Because we don't possess a single boat at Rejkiavik."
- "You don't mean to say so?"
- "You will have to go by land, following the shore. It will be longer,
- but more interesting."
- "Very well, then; and now I shall have to see about a guide."
- "I have one to offer you."
- "A safe, intelligent man."
- "Yes; an inhabitant of that peninsula. He is an eider-down hunter, and
- very clever. He speaks Danish perfectly."
- "When can I see him?"
- "To-morrow, if you like."
- "Why not to-day?"
- "Because he won't be here till to-morrow."
- "To-morrow, then," added my uncle with a sigh.
- This momentous conversation ended in a few minutes with warm
- acknowledgments paid by the German to the Icelandic Professor. At
- this dinner my uncle had just elicited important facts, amongst
- others, the history of Saknussemm, the reason of the mysterious
- document, that his host would not accompany him in his expedition,
- and that the very next day a guide would be waiting upon him.
- CHAPTER XI.
- A GUIDE FOUND TO THE CENTRE OF THE EARTH
- In the evening I took a short walk on the beach and returned at night
- to my plank-bed, where I slept soundly all night.
- When I awoke I heard my uncle talking at a great rate in the next
- room. I immediately dressed and joined him.
- He was conversing in the Danish language with a tall man, of robust
- build. This fine fellow must have been possessed of great strength.
- His eyes, set in a large and ingenuous face, seemed to me very
- intelligent; they were of a dreamy sea-blue. Long hair, which would
- have been called red even in England, fell in long meshes upon his
- broad shoulders. The movements of this native were lithe and supple;
- but he made little use of his arms in speaking, like a man who knew
- nothing or cared nothing about the language of gestures. His whole
- appearance bespoke perfect calmness and self-possession, not
- indolence but tranquillity. It was felt at once that he would be
- beholden to nobody, that he worked for his own convenience, and that
- nothing in this world could astonish or disturb his philosophic
- calmness.
- I caught the shades of this Icelander's character by the way in which
- he listened to the impassioned flow of words which fell from the
- Professor. He stood with arms crossed, perfectly unmoved by my
- uncle's incessant gesticulations. A negative was expressed by a slow
- movement of the head from left to right, an affirmative by a slight
- bend, so slight that his long hair scarcely moved. He carried economy
- of motion even to parsimony.
- Certainly I should never have dreamt in looking at this man that he
- was a hunter; he did not look likely to frighten his game, nor did he
- seem as if he would even get near it. But the mystery was explained
- when M. Fridrikssen informed me that this tranquil personage was only
- a hunter of the eider duck, whose under plumage constitutes the chief
- wealth of the island. This is the celebrated eider down, and it
- requires no great rapidity of movement to get it.
- Early in summer the female, a very pretty bird, goes to build her
- nest among the rocks of the fiords with which the coast is fringed.
- After building the nest she feathers it with down plucked from her
- own breast. Immediately the hunter, or rather the trader, comes and
- robs the nest, and the female recommences her work. This goes on as
- long as she has any down left. When she has stripped herself bare the
- male takes his turn to pluck himself. But as the coarse and hard
- plumage of the male has no commercial value, the hunter does not take
- the trouble to rob the nest of this; the female therefore lays her
- eggs in the spoils of her mate, the young are hatched, and next year
- the harvest begins again.
- Now, as the eider duck does not select steep cliffs for her nest, but
- rather the smooth terraced rocks which slope to the sea, the
- Icelandic hunter might exercise his calling without any inconvenient
- exertion. He was a farmer who was not obliged either to sow or reap
- his harvest, but merely to gather it in.
- This grave, phlegmatic, and silent individual was called Hans Bjelke;
- and he came recommended by M. Fridrikssen. He was our future guide.
- His manners were a singular contrast with my uncle's.
- Nevertheless, they soon came to understand each other. Neither looked
- at the amount of the payment: the one was ready to accept whatever
- was offered; the other was ready to give whatever was demanded. Never
- was bargain more readily concluded.
- The result of the treaty was, that Hans engaged on his part to
- conduct us to the village of Stapi, on the south shore of the Sn�fell
- peninsula, at the very foot of the volcano. By land this would be
- about twenty-two miles, to be done, said my uncle, in two days.
- But when he learnt that the Danish mile was 24,000 feet long, he was
- obliged to modify his calculations and allow seven or eight days for
- the march.
- Four horses were to be placed at our disposal--two to carry him and
- me, two for the baggage. Hams, as was his custom, would go on foot.
- He knew all that part of the coast perfectly, and promised to take us
- the shortest way.
- His engagement was not to terminate with our arrival at Stapi; he was
- to continue in my uncle's service for the whole period of his
- scientific researches, for the remuneration of three rixdales a week
- (about twelve shillings), but it was an express article of the
- covenant that his wages should be counted out to him every Saturday
- at six o'clock in the evening, which, according to him, was one
- indispensable part of the engagement.
- The start was fixed for the 16th of June. My uncle wanted to pay the
- hunter a portion in advance, but he refused with one word:
- "_Efter,_" said he.
- "After," said the Professor for my edification.
- The treaty concluded, Hans silently withdrew.
- "A famous fellow," cried my uncle; "but he little thinks of the
- marvellous part he has to play in the future."
- "So he is to go with us as far as--"
- "As far as the centre of the earth, Axel."
- Forty-eight hours were left before our departure; to my great regret
- I had to employ them in preparations; for all our ingenuity was
- required to pack every article to the best advantage; instruments
- here, arms there, tools in this package, provisions in that: four
- sets of packages in all.
- The instruments were:
- 1. An Eigel's centigrade thermometer, graduated up to 150 degrees
- (302 degrees Fahr.), which seemed to me too much or too little. Too
- much if the internal heat was to rise so high, for in this case we
- should be baked, not enough to measure the temperature of springs or
- any matter in a state of fusion.
- 2. An aneroid barometer, to indicate extreme pressures of the
- atmosphere. An ordinary barometer would not have answered the
- purpose, as the pressure would increase during our descent to a point
- which the mercurial barometer [1] would not register.
- 3. A chronometer, made by Boissonnas, jun., of Geneva, accurately set
- to the meridian of Hamburg.
- 4. Two compasses, viz., a common compass and a dipping needle.
- 5. A night glass.
- 6. Two of Ruhmkorff's apparatus, which, by means of an electric
- current, supplied a safe and handy portable light [2]
- The arms consisted of two of Purdy's rifles and two brace of pistols.
- But what did we want arms for? We had neither savages nor wild beasts
- to fear, I supposed. But my uncle seemed to believe in his arsenal as
- in his instruments, and more especially in a considerable quantity of
- gun cotton, which is unaffected by moisture, and the explosive force
- of which exceeds that of gunpowder.
- [1] In M. Verne's book a 'manometer' is the instrument used, of which
- very little is known. In a complete list of philosophical instruments
- the translator cannot find the name. As he is assured by a first-rate
- instrument maker, Chadburn, of Liverpool, that an aneroid can be
- constructed to measure any depth, he has thought it best to furnish
- the adventurous professor with this more familiar instrument. The
- 'manometer' is generally known as a pressure gauge.--TRANS.
- [2] Ruhmkorff's apparatus consists of a Bunsen pile worked with
- bichromate of potash, which makes no smell; an induction coil carries
- the electricity generated by the pile into communication with a
- lantern of peculiar construction; in this lantern there is a spiral
- glass tube from which the air has been excluded, and in which remains
- only a residuum of carbonic acid gas or of nitrogen. When the
- apparatus is put in action this gas becomes luminous, producing a
- white steady light. The pile and coil are placed in a leathern bag
- which the traveller carries over his shoulders; the lantern outside
- of the bag throws sufficient light into deep darkness; it enables one
- to venture without fear of explosions into the midst of the most
- inflammable gases, and is not extinguished even in the deepest
- waters. M. Ruhmkorff is a learned and most ingenious man of science;
- his great discovery is his induction coil, which produces a powerful
- stream of electricity. He obtained in 1864 the quinquennial prize of
- 50,000 franc reserved by the French government for the most ingenious
- application of electricity.
- The tools comprised two pickaxes, two spades, a silk ropeladder,
- three iron-tipped sticks, a hatchet, a hammer, a dozen wedges and
- iron spikes, and a long knotted rope. Now this was a large load, for
- the ladder was 300 feet long.
- And there were provisions too: this was not a large parcel, but it
- was comforting to know that of essence of beef and biscuits there
- were six months' consumption. Spirits were the only liquid, and of
- water we took none; but we had flasks, and my uncle depended on
- springs from which to fill them. Whatever objections I hazarded as to
- their quality, temperature, and even absence, remained ineffectual.
- To complete the exact inventory of all our travelling accompaniments,
- I must not forget a pocket medicine chest, containing blunt scissors,
- splints for broken limbs, a piece of tape of unbleached linen,
- bandages and compresses, lint, a lancet for bleeding, all dreadful
- articles to take with one. Then there was a row of phials containing
- dextrine, alcoholic ether, liquid acetate of lead, vinegar, and
- ammonia drugs which afforded me no comfort. Finally, all the articles
- needful to supply Ruhmkorff's apparatus.
- My uncle did not forget a supply of tobacco, coarse grained powder,
- and amadou, nor a leathern belt in which he carried a sufficient
- quantity of gold, silver, and paper money. Six pairs of boots and
- shoes, made waterproof with a composition of indiarubber and naphtha,
- were packed amongst the tools.
- "Clothed, shod, and equipped like this," said my uncle, "there is no
- telling how far we may go."
- The 14th was wholly spent in arranging all our different articles. In
- the evening we dined with Baron Tramps; the mayor of Rejkiavik, and
- Dr. Hyaltalin, the first medical man of the place, being of the
- party. M. Fridrikssen was not there. I learned afterwards that he and
- the Governor disagreed upon some question of administration, and did
- not speak to each other. I therefore knew not a single word of all
- that was said at this semi-official dinner; but I could not help
- noticing that my uncle talked the whole time.
- On the 15th our preparations were all made. Our host gave the
- Professor very great pleasure by presenting him with a map of Iceland
- far more complete than that of Hendersen. It was the map of M. Olaf
- Nikolas Olsen, in the proportion of 1 to 480,000 of the actual size
- of the island, and published by the Icelandic Literary Society. It
- was a precious document for a mineralogist.
- Our last evening was spent in intimate conversation with M.
- Fridrikssen, with whom I felt the liveliest sympathy; then, after the
- talk, succeeded, for me, at any rate, a disturbed and restless night.
- At five in the morning I was awoke by the neighing and pawing of four
- horses under my window. I dressed hastily and came down into the
- street. Hans was finishing our packing, almost as it were without
- moving a limb; and yet he did his work cleverly. My uncle made more
- noise than execution, and the guide seemed to pay very little
- attention to his energetic directions.
- At six o'clock our preparations were over. M. Fridrikssen shook hands
- with us. My uncle thanked him heartily for his extreme kindness. I
- constructed a few fine Latin sentences to express my cordial
- farewell. Then we bestrode our steeds and with his last adieu M.
- Fridrikssen treated me to a line of Virgil eminently applicable to
- such uncertain wanderers as we were likely to be:
- "Et quacumque viam dedent fortuna sequamur."
- "Therever fortune clears a way,
- Thither our ready footsteps stray."
- CHAPTER XII.
- A BARREN LAND
- We had started under a sky overcast but calm. There was no fear of
- heat, none of disastrous rain. It was just the weather for tourists.
- The pleasure of riding on horseback over an unknown country made me
- easy to be pleased at our first start. I threw myself wholly into the
- pleasure of the trip, and enjoyed the feeling of freedom and
- satisfied desire. I was beginning to take a real share in the
- enterprise.
- "Besides," I said to myself, "where's the risk? Here we are
- travelling all through a most interesting country! We are about to
- climb a very remarkable mountain; at the worst we are going to
- scramble down an extinct crater. It is evident that Saknussemm did
- nothing more than this. As for a passage leading to the centre of the
- globe, it is mere rubbish! perfectly impossible! Very well, then; let
- us get all the good we can out of this expedition, and don't let us
- haggle about the chances."
- This reasoning having settled my mind, we got out of Rejkiavik.
- Hans moved steadily on, keeping ahead of us at an even, smooth, and
- rapid pace. The baggage horses followed him without giving any
- trouble. Then came my uncle and myself, looking not so very
- ill-mounted on our small but hardy animals.
- Iceland is one of the largest islands in Europe. Its surface is
- 14,000 square miles, and it contains but 16,000 inhabitants.
- Geographers have divided it into four quarters, and we were crossing
- diagonally the south-west quarter, called the 'Sudvester Fjordungr.'
- On leaving Rejkiavik Hans took us by the seashore. We passed lean
- pastures which were trying very hard, but in vain, to look green;
- yellow came out best. The rugged peaks of the trachyte rocks
- presented faint outlines on the eastern horizon; at times a few
- patches of snow, concentrating the vague light, glittered upon the
- slopes of the distant mountains; certain peaks, boldly uprising,
- passed through the grey clouds, and reappeared above the moving
- mists, like breakers emerging in the heavens.
- Often these chains of barren rocks made a dip towards the sea, and
- encroached upon the scanty pasturage: but there was always enough
- room to pass. Besides, our horses instinctively chose the easiest
- places without ever slackening their pace. My uncle was refused even
- the satisfaction of stirring up his beast with whip or voice. He had
- no excuse for being impatient. I could not help smiling to see so
- tall a man on so small a pony, and as his long legs nearly touched
- the ground he looked like a six-legged centaur.
- "Good horse! good horse!" he kept saying. "You will see, Axel, that
- there is no more sagacious animal than the Icelandic horse. He is
- stopped by neither snow, nor storm, nor impassable roads, nor rocks,
- glaciers, or anything. He is courageous, sober, and surefooted. He
- never makes a false step, never shies. If there is a river or fiord
- to cross (and we shall meet with many) you will see him plunge in at
- once, just as if he were amphibious, and gain the opposite bank. But
- we must not hurry him; we must let him have his way, and we shall get
- on at the rate of thirty miles a day."
- "We may; but how about our guide?"
- "Oh, never mind him. People like him get over the ground without a
- thought. There is so little action in this man that he will never get
- tired; and besides, if he wants it, he shall have my horse. I shall
- get cramped if I don't have a little action. The arms are all right,
- but the legs want exercise."
- We were advancing at a rapid pace. The country was already almost a
- desert. Here and there was a lonely farm, called a bo�r built either
- of wood, or of sods, or of pieces of lava, looking like a poor beggar
- by the wayside. These ruinous huts seemed to solicit charity from
- passers-by; and on very small provocation we should have given alms
- for the relief of the poor inmates. In this country there were no
- roads and paths, and the poor vegetation, however slow, would soon
- efface the rare travellers' footsteps.
- Yet this part of the province, at a very small distance from the
- capital, is reckoned among the inhabited and cultivated portions of
- Iceland. What, then, must other tracts be, more desert than this
- desert? In the first half mile we had not seen one farmer standing
- before his cabin door, nor one shepherd tending a flock less wild
- than himself, nothing but a few cows and sheep left to themselves.
- What then would be those convulsed regions upon which we were
- advancing, regions subject to the dire phenomena of eruptions, the
- offspring of volcanic explosions and subterranean convulsions?
- We were to know them before long, but on consulting Olsen's map, I
- saw that they would be avoided by winding along the seashore. In
- fact, the great plutonic action is confined to the central portion of
- the island; there, rocks of the trappean and volcanic class,
- including trachyte, basalt, and tuffs and agglomerates associated
- with streams of lava, have made this a land of supernatural horrors.
- I had no idea of the spectacle which was awaiting us in the peninsula
- of Sn�fell, where these ruins of a fiery nature have formed a
- frightful chaos.
- In two hours from Rejkiavik we arrived at the burgh of Gufunes,
- called Aolkirkja, or principal church. There was nothing remarkable
- here but a few houses, scarcely enough for a German hamlet.
- Hans stopped here half an hour. He shared with us our frugal
- breakfast; answering my uncle's questions about the road and our
- resting place that night with merely yes or no, except when he said
- "Gard�r."
- I consulted the map to see where Gard�r was. I saw there was a small
- town of that name on the banks of the Hvalfiord, four miles from
- Rejkiavik. I showed it to my uncle.
- "Four miles only!" he exclaimed; "four miles out of twenty-eight.
- What a nice little walk!"
- He was about to make an observation to the guide, who without
- answering resumed his place at the head, and went on his way.
- Three hours later, still treading on the colourless grass of the
- pasture land, we had to work round the Kolla fiord, a longer way but
- an easier one than across that inlet. We soon entered into a
- 'pingstaoer' or parish called Ejulberg, from whose steeple twelve
- o'clock would have struck, if Icelandic churches were rich enough to
- possess clocks. But they are like the parishioners who have no
- watches and do without.
- There our horses were baited; then taking the narrow path to left
- between a chain of hills and the sea, they carried us to our next
- stage, the aolkirkja of Brant�r and one mile farther on, to Saurbo�r
- 'Annexia,' a chapel of ease built on the south shore of the Hvalfiord.
- It was now four o'clock, and we had gone four Icelandic miles, or
- twenty-four English miles.
- In that place the fiord was at least three English miles wide; the
- waves rolled with a rushing din upon the sharp-pointed rocks; this
- inlet was confined between walls of rock, precipices crowned by sharp
- peaks 2,000 feet high, and remarkable for the brown strata which
- separated the beds of reddish tuff. However much I might respect the
- intelligence of our quadrupeds, I hardly cared to put it to the test
- by trusting myself to it on horseback across an arm of the sea.
- If they are as intelligent as they are said to be, I thought, they
- won't try it. In any case, I will tax my intelligence to direct
- theirs.
- But my uncle would not wait. He spurred on to the edge. His steed
- lowered his head to examine the nearest waves and stopped. My uncle,
- who had an instinct of his own, too, applied pressure, and was again
- refused by the animal significantly shaking his head. Then followed
- strong language, and the whip; but the brute answered these arguments
- with kicks and endeavours to throw his rider. At last the clever
- little pony, with a bend of his knees, started from under the
- Professor's legs, and left him standing upon two boulders on the
- shore just like the colossus of Rhodes.
- "Confounded brute!" cried the unhorsed horseman, suddenly degraded
- into a pedestrian, just as ashamed as a cavalry officer degraded to a
- foot soldier.
- "_F�rja,_" said the guide, touching his shoulder.
- "What! a boat?"
- "_Der,_" replied Hans, pointing to one.
- "Yes," I cried; "there is a boat."
- "Why did not you say so then? Well, let us go on."
- "_Tidvatten,_" said the guide.
- "What is he saying?"
- "He says tide," said my uncle, translating the Danish word.
- "No doubt we must wait for the tide."
- "_F�rbida,_" said my uncle.
- "_Ja,_" replied Hans.
- My uncle stamped with his foot, while the horses went on to the boat.
- I perfectly understood the necessity of abiding a particular moment
- of the tide to undertake the crossing of the fiord, when, the sea
- having reached its greatest height, it should be slack water. Then
- the ebb and flow have no sensible effect, and the boat does not risk
- being carried either to the bottom or out to sea.
- That favourable moment arrived only with six o'clock; when my uncle,
- myself, the guide, two other passengers and the four horses, trusted
- ourselves to a somewhat fragile raft. Accustomed as I was to the
- swift and sure steamers on the Elbe, I found the oars of the rowers
- rather a slow means of propulsion. It took us more than an hour to
- cross the fiord; but the passage was effected without any mishap.
- In another half hour we had reached the aolkirkja of Gard�r
- CHAPTER XIII.
- HOSPITALITY UNDER THE ARCTIC CIRCLE
- It ought to have been night-time, but under the 65th parallel there
- was nothing surprising in the nocturnal polar light. In Iceland
- during the months of June and July the sun does not set.
- But the temperature was much lower. I was cold and more hungry than
- cold. Welcome was the sight of the bo�r which was hospitably opened
- to receive us.
- It was a peasant's house, but in point of hospitality it was equal to
- a king's. On our arrival the master came with outstretched hands, and
- without more ceremony he beckoned us to follow him.
- To accompany him down the long, narrow, dark passage, would have been
- impossible. Therefore, we followed, as he bid us. The building was
- constructed of roughly squared timbers, with rooms on both sides,
- four in number, all opening out into the one passage: these were the
- kitchen, the weaving shop, the badstofa, or family sleeping-room, and
- the visitors' room, which was the best of all. My uncle, whose height
- had not been thought of in building the house, of course hit his head
- several times against the beams that projected from the ceilings.
- We were introduced into our apartment, a large room with a floor of
- earth stamped hard down, and lighted by a window, the panes of which
- were formed of sheep's bladder, not admitting too much light. The
- sleeping accommodation consisted of dry litter, thrown into two
- wooden frames painted red, and ornamented with Icelandic sentences. I
- was hardly expecting so much comfort; the only discomfort proceeded
- from the strong odour of dried fish, hung meat, and sour milk, of
- which my nose made bitter complaints.
- When we had laid aside our travelling wraps the voice of the host was
- heard inviting us to the kitchen, the only room where a fire was
- lighted even in the severest cold.
- My uncle lost no time in obeying the friendly call, nor was I slack
- in following.
- The kitchen chimney was constructed on the ancient pattern; in the
- middle of the room was a stone for a hearth, over it in the roof a
- hole to let the smoke escape. The kitchen was also a dining-room.
- At our entrance the host, as if he had never seen us, greeted us with
- the word "_S�llvertu,_" which means "be happy," and came and kissed
- us on the cheek.
- After him his wife pronounced the same words, accompanied with the
- same ceremonial; then the two placing their hands upon their hearts,
- inclined profoundly before us.
- I hasten to inform the reader that this Icelandic lady was the mother
- of nineteen children, all, big and little, swarming in the midst of
- the dense wreaths of smoke with which the fire on the hearth filled
- the chamber. Every moment I noticed a fair-haired and rather
- melancholy face peeping out of the rolling volumes of smoke--they
- were a perfect cluster of unwashed angels.
- My uncle and I treated this little tribe with kindness; and in a very
- short time we each had three or four of these brats on our shoulders,
- as many on our laps, and the rest between our knees. Those who could
- speak kept repeating "_S�llvertu,_" in every conceivable tone; those
- that could not speak made up for that want by shrill cries.
- This concert was brought to a close by the announcement of dinner. At
- that moment our hunter returned, who had been seeing his horses
- provided for; that is to say, he had economically let them loose in
- the fields, where the poor beasts had to content themselves with the
- scanty moss they could pull off the rocks and a few meagre sea weeds,
- and the next day they would not fail to come of themselves and resume
- the labours of the previous day.
- "_S�llvertu,_" said Hans.
- Then calmly, automatically, and dispassionately he kissed the host,
- the hostess, and their nineteen children.
- This ceremony over, we sat at table, twenty-four in number, and
- therefore one upon another. The luckiest had only two urchins upon
- their knees.
- But silence reigned in all this little world at the arrival of the
- soup, and the national taciturnity resumed its empire even over the
- children. The host served out to us a soup made of lichen and by no
- means unpleasant, then an immense piece of dried fish floating in
- butter rancid with twenty years' keeping, and, therefore, according
- to Icelandic gastronomy, much preferable to fresh butter. Along with
- this, we had 'skye,' a sort of clotted milk, with biscuits, and a
- liquid prepared from juniper berries; for beverage we had a thin milk
- mixed with water, called in this country 'blanda.' It is not for me
- to decide whether this diet is wholesome or not; all I can say is,
- that I was desperately hungry, and that at dessert I swallowed to the
- very last gulp of a thick broth made from buckwheat.
- As soon as the meal was over the children disappeared, and their
- elders gathered round the peat fire, which also burnt such
- miscellaneous fuel as briars, cow-dung, and fishbones. After this
- little pinch of warmth the different groups retired to their
- respective rooms. Our hostess hospitably offered us her assistance in
- undressing, according to Icelandic usage; but on our gracefully
- declining, she insisted no longer, and I was able at last to curl
- myself up in my mossy bed.
- At five next morning we bade our host farewell, my uncle with
- difficulty persuading him to accept a proper remuneration; and Hans
- signalled the start.
- At a hundred yards from Gard�r the soil began to change its aspect;
- it became boggy and less favourable to progress. On our right the
- chain of mountains was indefinitely prolonged like an immense system
- of natural fortifications, of which we were following the
- counter-scarp or lesser steep; often we were met by streams, which we
- had to ford with great care, not to wet our packages.
- The desert became wider and more hideous; yet from time to time we
- seemed to descry a human figure that fled at our approach, sometimes
- a sharp turn would bring us suddenly within a short distance of one
- of these spectres, and I was filled with loathing at the sight of a
- huge deformed head, the skin shining and hairless, and repulsive
- sores visible through the gaps in the poor creature's wretched rags.
- The unhappy being forbore to approach us and offer his misshapen
- hand. He fled away, but not before Hans had saluted him with the
- customary "_S�llvertu._"
- "_Spetelsk,_" said he.
- "A leper!" my uncle repeated.
- This word produced a repulsive effect. The horrible disease of
- leprosy is too common in Iceland; it is not contagious, but
- hereditary, and lepers are forbidden to marry.
- These apparitions were not cheerful, and did not throw any charm over
- the less and less attractive landscapes. The last tufts of grass had
- disappeared from beneath our feet. Not a tree was to be seen, unless
- we except a few dwarf birches as low as brushwood. Not an animal but
- a few wandering ponies that their owners would not feed. Sometimes we
- could see a hawk balancing himself on his wings under the grey cloud,
- and then darting away south with rapid flight. I felt melancholy
- under this savage aspect of nature, and my thoughts went away to the
- cheerful scenes I had left in the far south.
- We had to cross a few narrow fiords, and at last quite a wide gulf;
- the tide, then high, allowed us to pass over without delay, and to
- reach the hamlet of Alftanes, one mile beyond.
- That evening, after having forded two rivers full of trout and pike,
- called Alfa and Heta, we were obliged to spend the night in a
- deserted building worthy to be haunted by all the elfins of
- Scandinavia. The ice king certainly held court here, and gave us all
- night long samples of what he could do.
- No particular event marked the next day. Bogs, dead levels,
- melancholy desert tracks, wherever we travelled. By nightfall we had
- accomplished half our journey, and we lay at Kr�solbt.
- On the 19th of June, for about a mile, that is an Icelandic mile, we
- walked upon hardened lava; this ground is called in the country
- 'hraun'; the writhen surface presented the appearance of distorted,
- twisted cables, sometimes stretched in length, sometimes contorted
- together; an immense torrent, once liquid, now solid, ran from the
- nearest mountains, now extinct volcanoes, but the ruins around
- revealed the violence of the past eruptions. Yet here and there were
- a few jets of steam from hot springs.
- We had no time to watch these phenomena; we had to proceed on our
- way. Soon at the foot of the mountains the boggy land reappeared,
- intersected by little lakes. Our route now lay westward; we had
- turned the great bay of Faxa, and the twin peaks of Sn�fell rose
- white into the cloudy sky at the distance of at least five miles.
- The horses did their duty well, no difficulties stopped them in their
- steady career. I was getting tired; but my uncle was as firm and
- straight as he was at our first start. I could not help admiring his
- persistency, as well as the hunter's, who treated our expedition like
- a mere promenade.
- June 20. At six p.m. we reached B�dir, a village on the sea shore;
- and the guide there claiming his due, my uncle settled with him. It
- was Hans' own family, that is, his uncles and cousins, who gave us
- hospitality; we were kindly received, and without taxing too much the
- goodness of these folks, I would willingly have tarried here to
- recruit after my fatigues. But my uncle, who wanted no recruiting,
- would not hear of it, and the next morning we had to bestride our
- beasts again.
- The soil told of the neighbourhood of the mountain, whose granite
- foundations rose from the earth like the knotted roots of some huge
- oak. We were rounding the immense base of the volcano. The Professor
- hardly took his eyes off it. He tossed up his arms and seemed to defy
- it, and to declare, "There stands the giant that I shall conquer."
- After about four hours' walking the horses stopped of their own
- accord at the door of the priest's house at Stapi.
- CHAPTER XIV.
- BUT ARCTICS CAN BE INHOSPITABLE, TOO
- Stapi is a village consisting of about thirty huts, built of lava, at
- the south side of the base of the volcano. It extends along the inner
- edge of a small fiord, inclosed between basaltic walls of the
- strangest construction.
- Basalt is a brownish rock of igneous origin. It assumes regular
- forms, the arrangement of which is often very surprising. Here nature
- had done her work geometrically, with square and compass and plummet.
- Everywhere else her art consists alone in throwing down huge masses
- together in disorder. You see cones imperfectly formed, irregular
- pyramids, with a fantastic disarrangement of lines; but here, as if
- to exhibit an example of regularity, though in advance of the very
- earliest architects, she has created a severely simple order of
- architecture, never surpassed either by the splendours of Babylon or
- the wonders of Greece.
- I had heard of the Giant's Causeway in Ireland, and Fingal's Cave in
- Staffa, one of the Hebrides; but I had never yet seen a basaltic
- formation.
- At Stapi I beheld this phenomenon in all its beauty.
- The wall that confined the fiord, like all the coast of the
- peninsula, was composed of a series of vertical columns thirty feet
- high. These straight shafts, of fair proportions, supported an
- architrave of horizontal slabs, the overhanging portion of which
- formed a semi-arch over the sea. At intervals, under this natural
- shelter, there spread out vaulted entrances in beautiful curves, into
- which the waves came dashing with foam and spray. A few shafts of
- basalt, torn from their hold by the fury of tempests, lay along the
- soil like remains of an ancient temple, in ruins for ever fresh, and
- over which centuries passed without leaving a trace of age upon them.
- This was our last stage upon the earth. Hans had exhibited great
- intelligence, and it gave me some little comfort to think then that
- he was not going to leave us.
- On arriving at the door of the rector's house, which was not
- different from the others, I saw a man shoeing a horse, hammer in
- hand, and with a leathern apron on.
- "_S�llvertu,_" said the hunter.
- "_God dag,_" said the blacksmith in good Danish.
- "_Kyrkoherde,_" said Hans, turning round to my uncle.
- "The rector," repeated the Professor. "It seems, Axel, that this good
- man is the rector."
- Our guide in the meanwhile was making the 'kyrkoherde' aware of the
- position of things; when the latter, suspending his labours for a
- moment, uttered a sound no doubt understood between horses and
- farriers, and immediately a tall and ugly hag appeared from the hut.
- She must have been six feet at the least. I was in great alarm lest
- she should treat me to the Icelandic kiss; but there was no occasion
- to fear, nor did she do the honours at all too gracefully.
- The visitors' room seemed to me the worst in the whole cabin. It was
- close, dirty, and evil smelling. But we had to be content. The rector
- did not to go in for antique hospitality. Very far from it. Before
- the day was over I saw that we had to do with a blacksmith, a
- fisherman, a hunter, a joiner, but not at all with a minister of the
- Gospel. To be sure, it was a week-day; perhaps on a Sunday he made
- amends.
- I don't mean to say anything against these poor priests, who after
- all are very wretched. They receive from the Danish Government a
- ridiculously small pittance, and they get from the parish the fourth
- part of the tithe, which does not come to sixty marks a year (about
- �4). Hence the necessity to work for their livelihood; but after
- fishing, hunting, and shoeing horses for any length of time, one soon
- gets into the ways and manners of fishermen, hunters, and farriers,
- and other rather rude and uncultivated people; and that evening I
- found out that temperance was not among the virtues that
- distinguished my host.
- My uncle soon discovered what sort of a man he had to do with;
- instead of a good and learned man he found a rude and coarse peasant.
- He therefore resolved to commence the grand expedition at once, and
- to leave this inhospitable parsonage. He cared nothing about fatigue,
- and resolved to spend some days upon the mountain.
- The preparations for our departure were therefore made the very day
- after our arrival at Stapi. Hans hired the services of three
- Icelanders to do the duty of the horses in the transport of the
- burdens; but as soon as we had arrived at the crater these natives
- were to turn back and leave us to our own devices. This was to be
- clearly understood.
- My uncle now took the opportunity to explain to Hans that it was his
- intention to explore the interior of the volcano to its farthest
- limits.
- Hans merely nodded. There or elsewhere, down in the bowels of the
- earth, or anywhere on the surface, all was alike to him. For my own
- part the incidents of the journey had hitherto kept me amused, and
- made me forgetful of coming evils; but now my fears again were
- beginning to get the better of me. But what could I do? The place to
- resist the Professor would have been Hamburg, not the foot of Sn�fell.
- One thought, above all others, harassed and alarmed me; it was one
- calculated to shake firmer nerves than mine.
- Now, thought I, here we are, about to climb Sn�fell. Very good. We
- will explore the crater. Very good, too, others have done as much
- without dying for it. But that is not all. If there is a way to
- penetrate into the very bowels of the island, if that ill-advised
- Saknussemm has told a true tale, we shall lose our way amidst the
- deep subterranean passages of this volcano. Now, there is no proof
- that Sn�fell is extinct. Who can assure us that an eruption is not
- brewing at this very moment? Does it follow that because the monster
- has slept since 1229 he must therefore never awake again? And if he
- wakes up presently, where shall we be?
- It was worth while debating this question, and I did debate it. I
- could not sleep for dreaming about eruptions. Now, the part of
- ejected scoriae and ashes seemed to my mind a very rough one to act.
- So, at last, when I could hold out no longer, I resolved to lay the
- case before my uncle, as prudently and as cautiously as possible,
- just under the form of an almost impossible hypothesis.
- I went to him. I communicated my fears to him, and drew back a step
- to give him room for the explosion which I knew must follow. But I
- was mistaken.
- "I was thinking of that," he replied with great simplicity.
- What could those words mean?--Was he actually going to listen to
- reason? Was he contemplating the abandonment of his plans? This was
- too good to be true.
- After a few moments' silence, during which I dared not question him,
- he resumed:
- "I was thinking of that. Ever since we arrived at Stapi I have been
- occupied with the important question you have just opened, for we
- must not be guilty of imprudence."
- "No, indeed!" I replied with forcible emphasis.
- "For six hundred years Sn�fell has been dumb; but he may speak again.
- Now, eruptions are always preceded by certain well-known phenomena. I
- have therefore examined the natives, I have studied external
- appearances, and I can assure you, Axel, that there will be no
- eruption."
- At this positive affirmation I stood amazed and speechless.
- "You don't doubt my word?" said my uncle. "Well, follow me."
- I obeyed like an automaton. Coming out from the priest's house, the
- Professor took a straight road, which, through an opening in the
- basaltic wall, led away from the sea. We were soon in the open
- country, if one may give that name to a vast extent of mounds of
- volcanic products. This tract seemed crushed under a rain of enormous
- ejected rocks of trap, basalt, granite, and all kinds of igneous
- rocks.
- Here and there I could see puffs and jets of steam curling up into
- the air, called in Icelandic 'reykir,' issuing from thermal springs,
- and indicating by their motion the volcanic energy underneath. This
- seemed to justify my fears: But I fell from the height of my new-born
- hopes when my uncle said:
- "You see all these volumes of steam, Axel; well, they demonstrate
- that we have nothing to fear from the fury of a volcanic eruption."
- "Am I to believe that?" I cried.
- "Understand this clearly," added the Professor. "At the approach of
- an eruption these jets would redouble their activity, but disappear
- altogether during the period of the eruption. For the elastic fluids,
- being no longer under pressure, go off by way of the crater instead
- of escaping by their usual passages through the fissures in the soil.
- Therefore, if these vapours remain in their usual condition, if they
- display no augmentation of force, and if you add to this the
- observation that the wind and rain are not ceasing and being replaced
- by a still and heavy atmosphere, then you may affirm that no eruption
- is preparing."
- "But--"
- 'No more; that is sufficient. When science has uttered her voice, let
- babblers hold their peace.'
- I returned to the parsonage, very crestfallen. My uncle had beaten me
- with the weapons of science. Still I had one hope left, and this was,
- that when we had reached the bottom of the crater it would be
- impossible, for want of a passage, to go deeper, in spite of all the
- Saknussemm's in Iceland.
- I spent that whole night in one constant nightmare; in the heart of a
- volcano, and from the deepest depths of the earth I saw myself tossed
- up amongst the interplanetary spaces under the form of an eruptive
- rock.
- The next day, June 23, Hans was awaiting us with his companions
- carrying provisions, tools, and instruments; two iron pointed sticks,
- two rifles, and two shot belts were for my uncle and myself. Hans, as
- a cautious man, had added to our luggage a leathern bottle full of
- water, which, with that in our flasks, would ensure us a supply of
- water for eight days.
- It was nine in the morning. The priest and his tall Meg�ra were
- awaiting us at the door. We supposed they were standing there to bid
- us a kind farewell. But the farewell was put in the unexpected form
- of a heavy bill, in which everything was charged, even to the very
- air we breathed in the pastoral house, infected as it was. This
- worthy couple were fleecing us just as a Swiss innkeeper might have
- done, and estimated their imperfect hospitality at the highest price.
- My uncle paid without a remark: a man who is starting for the centre
- of the earth need not be particular about a few rix dollars.
- This point being settled, Hans gave the signal, and we soon left
- Stapi behind us.
- CHAPTER XV.
- SN�FELL AT LAST
- Sn�fell is 5,000 feet high. Its double cone forms the limit of a
- trachytic belt which stands out distinctly in the mountain system of
- the island. From our starting point we could see the two peaks boldly
- projected against the dark grey sky; I could see an enormous cap of
- snow coming low down upon the giant's brow.
- We walked in single file, headed by the hunter, who ascended by
- narrow tracks, where two could not have gone abreast. There was
- therefore no room for conversation.
- After we had passed the basaltic wall of the fiord of Stapi we passed
- over a vegetable fibrous peat bog, left from the ancient vegetation
- of this peninsula. The vast quantity of this unworked fuel would be
- sufficient to warm the whole population of Iceland for a century;
- this vast turbary measured in certain ravines had in many places a
- depth of seventy feet, and presented layers of carbonized remains of
- vegetation alternating with thinner layers of tufaceous pumice.
- As a true nephew of the Professor Liedenbrock, and in spite of my
- dismal prospects, I could not help observing with interest the
- mineralogical curiosities which lay about me as in a vast museum, and
- I constructed for myself a complete geological account of Iceland.
- This most curious island has evidently been projected from the bottom
- of the sea at a comparatively recent date. Possibly, it may still be
- subject to gradual elevation. If this is the case, its origin may
- well be attributed to subterranean fires. Therefore, in this case,
- the theory of Sir Humphry Davy, Saknussemm's document, and my uncle's
- theories would all go off in smoke. This hypothesis led me to examine
- with more attention the appearance of the surface, and I soon arrived
- at a conclusion as to the nature of the forces which presided at its
- birth.
- Iceland, which is entirely devoid of alluvial soil, is wholly
- composed of volcanic tufa, that is to say, an agglomeration of porous
- rocks and stones. Before the volcanoes broke out it consisted of trap
- rocks slowly upraised to the level of the sea by the action of
- central forces. The internal fires had not yet forced their way
- through.
- But at a later period a wide chasm formed diagonally from south-west
- to north-east, through which was gradually forced out the trachyte
- which was to form a mountain chain. No violence accompanied this
- change; the matter thrown out was in vast quantities, and the liquid
- material oozing out from the abysses of the earth slowly spread in
- extensive plains or in hillocky masses. To this period belong the
- felspar, syenites, and porphyries.
- But with the help of this outflow the thickness of the crust of the
- island increased materially, and therefore also its powers of
- resistance. It may easily be conceived what vast quantities of
- elastic gases, what masses of molten matter accumulated beneath its
- solid surface whilst no exit was practicable after the cooling of the
- trachytic crust. Therefore a time would come when the elastic and
- explosive forces of the imprisoned gases would upheave this ponderous
- cover and drive out for themselves openings through tall chimneys.
- Hence then the volcano would distend and lift up the crust, and then
- burst through a crater suddenly formed at the summit or thinnest part
- of the volcano.
- To the eruption succeeded other volcanic phenomena. Through the
- outlets now made first escaped the ejected basalt of which the plain
- we had just left presented such marvellous specimens. We were moving
- over grey rocks of dense and massive formation, which in cooling had
- formed into hexagonal prisms. Everywhere around us we saw truncated
- cones, formerly so many fiery mouths.
- After the exhaustion of the basalt, the volcano, the power of which
- grew by the extinction of the lesser craters, supplied an egress to
- lava, ashes, and scoriae, of which I could see lengthened screes
- streaming down the sides of the mountain like flowing hair.
- Such was the succession of phenomena which produced Iceland, all
- arising from the action of internal fire; and to suppose that the
- mass within did not still exist in a state of liquid incandescence
- was absurd; and nothing could surpass the absurdity of fancying that
- it was possible to reach the earth's centre.
- So I felt a little comforted as we advanced to the assault of Sn�fell.
- The way was growing more and more arduous, the ascent steeper and
- steeper; the loose fragments of rock trembled beneath us, and the
- utmost care was needed to avoid dangerous falls.
- Hans went on as quietly as if he were on level ground; sometimes he
- disappeared altogether behind the huge blocks, then a shrill whistle
- would direct us on our way to him. Sometimes he would halt, pick up a
- few bits of stone, build them up into a recognisable form, and thus
- made landmarks to guide us in our way back. A very wise precaution in
- itself, but, as things turned out, quite useless.
- Three hours' fatiguing march had only brought us to the base of the
- mountain. There Hans bid us come to a halt, and a hasty breakfast was
- served out. My uncle swallowed two mouthfuls at a time to get on
- faster. But, whether he liked it or not, this was a rest as well as a
- breakfast hour and he had to wait till it pleased our guide to move
- on, which came to pass in an hour. The three Icelanders, just as
- taciturn as their comrade the hunter, never spoke, and ate their
- breakfasts in silence.
- We were now beginning to scale the steep sides of Sn�fell. Its snowy
- summit, by an optical illusion not unfrequent in mountains, seemed
- close to us, and yet how many weary hours it took to reach it! The
- stones, adhering by no soil or fibrous roots of vegetation, rolled
- away from under our feet, and rushed down the precipice below with
- the swiftness of an avalanche.
- At some places the flanks of the mountain formed an angle with the
- horizon of at least 36 degrees; it was impossible to climb them, and
- these stony cliffs had to be tacked round, not without great
- difficulty. Then we helped each other with our sticks.
- I must admit that my uncle kept as close to me as he could; he never
- lost sight of me, and in many straits his arm furnished me with a
- powerful support. He himself seemed to possess an instinct for
- equilibrium, for he never stumbled. The Icelanders, though burdened
- with our loads, climbed with the agility of mountaineers.
- To judge by the distant appearance of the summit of Sn�fell, it would
- have seemed too steep to ascend on our side. Fortunately, after an
- hour of fatigue and athletic exercises, in the midst of the vast
- surface of snow presented by the hollow between the two peaks, a kind
- of staircase appeared unexpectedly which greatly facilitated our
- ascent. It was formed by one of those torrents of stones flung up by
- the eruptions, called 'sting' by the Icelanders. If this torrent had
- not been arrested in its fall by the formation of the sides of the
- mountain, it would have gone on to the sea and formed more islands.
- Such as it was, it did us good service. The steepness increased, but
- these stone steps allowed us to rise with facility, and even with
- such rapidity that, having rested for a moment while my companions
- continued their ascent, I perceived them already reduced by distance
- to microscopic dimensions.
- At seven we had ascended the two thousand steps of this grand
- staircase, and we had attained a bulge in the mountain, a kind of bed
- on which rested the cone proper of the crater.
- Three thousand two hundred feet below us stretched the sea. We had
- passed the limit of perpetual snow, which, on account of the moisture
- of the climate, is at a greater elevation in Iceland than the high
- latitude would give reason to suppose. The cold was excessively keen.
- The wind was blowing violently. I was exhausted. The Professor saw
- that my limbs were refusing to perform their office, and in spite of
- his impatience he decided on stopping. He therefore spoke to the
- hunter, who shook his head, saying:
- "_Ofvanf�r._"
- "It seems we must go higher," said my uncle.
- Then he asked Hans for his reason.
- "_Mistour,_" replied the guide.
- "_Ja Mistour,_" said one of the Icelanders in a tone of alarm.
- "What does that word mean?" I asked uneasily.
- "Look!" said my uncle.
- I looked down upon the plain. An immense column of pulverized pumice,
- sand and dust was rising with a whirling circular motion like a
- waterspout; the wind was lashing it on to that side of Sn�fell where
- we were holding on; this dense veil, hung across the sun, threw a
- deep shadow over the mountain. If that huge revolving pillar sloped
- down, it would involve us in its whirling eddies. This phenomenon,
- which is not unfrequent when the wind blows from the glaciers, is
- called in Icelandic 'mistour.'
- "_Hastigt! hastigt!_" cried our guide.
- Without knowing Danish I understood at once that we must follow Hans
- at the top of our speed. He began to circle round the cone of the
- crater, but in a diagonal direction so as to facilitate our progress.
- Presently the dust storm fell upon the mountain, which quivered under
- the shock; the loose stones, caught with the irresistible blasts of
- wind, flew about in a perfect hail as in an eruption. Happily we were
- on the opposite side, and sheltered from all harm. But for the
- precaution of our guide, our mangled bodies, torn and pounded into
- fragments, would have been carried afar like the ruins hurled along
- by some unknown meteor.
- Yet Hans did not think it prudent to spend the night upon the sides
- of the cone. We continued our zigzag climb. The fifteen hundred
- remaining feet took us five hours to clear; the circuitous route, the
- diagonal and the counter marches, must have measured at least three
- leagues. I could stand it no longer. I was yielding to the effects of
- hunger and cold. The rarefied air scarcely gave play to the action of
- my lungs.
- At last, at eleven in the sunlight night, the summit of Sn�fell was
- reached, and before going in for shelter into the crater I had time
- to observe the midnight sun, at his lowest point, gilding with his
- pale rays the island that slept at my feet.
- CHAPTER XVI.
- BOLDLY DOWN THE CRATER
- Supper was rapidly devoured, and the little company housed themselves
- as best they could. The bed was hard, the shelter not very
- substantial, and our position an anxious one, at five thousand feet
- above the sea level. Yet I slept particularly well; it was one of the
- best nights I had ever had, and I did not even dream.
- Next morning we awoke half frozen by the sharp keen air, but with the
- light of a splendid sun. I rose from my granite bed and went out to
- enjoy the magnificent spectacle that lay unrolled before me.
- I stood on the very summit of the southernmost of Sn�fell's peaks.
- The range of the eye extended over the whole island. By an optical
- law which obtains at all great heights, the shores seemed raised and
- the centre depressed. It seemed as if one of Helbesmer's raised maps
- lay at my feet. I could see deep valleys intersecting each other in
- every direction, precipices like low walls, lakes reduced to ponds,
- rivers abbreviated into streams. On my right were numberless glaciers
- and innumerable peaks, some plumed with feathery clouds of smoke. The
- undulating surface of these endless mountains, crested with sheets of
- snow, reminded one of a stormy sea. If I looked westward, there the
- ocean lay spread out in all its magnificence, like a mere
- continuation of those flock-like summits. The eye could hardly tell
- where the snowy ridges ended and the foaming waves began.
- I was thus steeped in the marvellous ecstasy which all high summits
- develop in the mind; and now without giddiness, for I was beginning
- to be accustomed to these sublime aspects of nature. My dazzled eyes
- were bathed in the bright flood of the solar rays. I was forgetting
- where and who I was, to live the life of elves and sylphs, the
- fanciful creation of Scandinavian superstitions. I felt intoxicated
- with the sublime pleasure of lofty elevations without thinking of the
- profound abysses into which I was shortly to be plunged. But I was
- brought back to the realities of things by the arrival of Hans and
- the Professor, who joined me on the summit.
- My uncle pointed out to me in the far west a light steam or mist, a
- semblance of land, which bounded the distant horizon of waters.
- "Greenland!" said he.
- "Greenland?" I cried.
- "Yes; we are only thirty-five leagues from it; and during thaws the
- white bears, borne by the ice fields from the north, are carried even
- into Iceland. But never mind that. Here we are at the top of Sn�fell
- and here are two peaks, one north and one south. Hans will tell us
- the name of that on which we are now standing."
- The question being put, Hans replied:
- "Scartaris."
- My uncle shot a triumphant glance at me.
- "Now for the crater!" he cried.
- The crater of Sn�fell resembled an inverted cone, the opening of which
- might be half a league in diameter. Its depth appeared to be about
- two thousand feet. Imagine the aspect of such a reservoir, brim full
- and running over with liquid fire amid the rolling thunder. The
- bottom of the funnel was about 250 feet in circuit, so that the
- gentle slope allowed its lower brim to be reached without much
- difficulty. Involuntarily I compared the whole crater to an enormous
- erected mortar, and the comparison put me in a terrible fright.
- "What madness," I thought, "to go down into a mortar, perhaps a
- loaded mortar, to be shot up into the air at a moment's notice!"
- But I did not try to back out of it. Hans with perfect coolness
- resumed the lead, and I followed him without a word.
- In order to facilitate the descent, Hans wound his way down the cone
- by a spiral path. Our route lay amidst eruptive rocks, some of which,
- shaken out of their loosened beds, rushed bounding down the abyss,
- and in their fall awoke echoes remarkable for their loud and
- well-defined sharpness.
- In certain parts of the cone there were glaciers. Here Hans advanced
- only with extreme precaution, sounding his way with his iron-pointed
- pole, to discover any crevasses in it. At particularly dubious
- passages we were obliged to connect ourselves with each other by a
- long cord, in order that any man who missed his footing might be held
- up by his companions. This solid formation was prudent, but did not
- remove all danger.
- Yet, notwithstanding the difficulties of the descent, down steeps
- unknown to the guide, the journey was accomplished without accidents,
- except the loss of a coil of rope, which escaped from the hands of an
- Icelander, and took the shortest way to the bottom of the abyss.
- At mid-day we arrived. I raised my head and saw straight above me the
- upper aperture of the cone, framing a bit of sky of very small
- circumference, but almost perfectly round. Just upon the edge
- appeared the snowy peak of Saris, standing out sharp and clear
- against endless space.
- At the bottom of the crater were three chimneys, through which, in
- its eruptions, Sn�fell had driven forth fire and lava from its
- central furnace. Each of these chimneys was a hundred feet in
- diameter. They gaped before us right in our path. I had not the
- courage to look down either of them. But Professor Liedenbrock had
- hastily surveyed all three; he was panting, running from one to the
- other, gesticulating, and uttering incoherent expressions. Hans and
- his comrades, seated upon loose lava rocks, looked at him with as much
- wonder as they knew how to express, and perhaps taking him for an
- escaped lunatic.
- Suddenly my uncle uttered a cry. I thought his foot must have slipped
- and that he had fallen down one of the holes. But, no; I saw him,
- with arms outstretched and legs straddling wide apart, erect before a
- granite rock that stood in the centre of the crater, just like a
- pedestal made ready to receive a statue of Pluto. He stood like a man
- stupefied, but the stupefaction soon gave way to delirious rapture.
- "Axel, Axel," he cried. "Come, come!"
- I ran. Hans and the Icelanders never stirred.
- "Look!" cried the Professor.
- And, sharing his astonishment, but I think not his joy, I read on the
- western face of the block, in Runic characters, half mouldered away
- with lapse of ages, this thrice-accursed name:
- [At this point a Runic text appears]
- "Arne Saknussemm!" replied my uncle. "Do you yet doubt?"
- I made no answer; and I returned in silence to my lava seat in a
- state of utter speechless consternation. Here was crushing evidence.
- How long I remained plunged in agonizing reflections I cannot tell;
- all that I know is, that on raising my head again, I saw only my
- uncle and Hans at the bottom of the crater. The Icelanders had been
- dismissed, and they were now descending the outer slopes of Sn�fell
- to return to Stapi.
- Hans slept peaceably at the foot of a rock, in a lava bed, where he
- had found a suitable couch for himself; but my uncle was pacing
- around the bottom of the crater like a wild beast in a cage. I had
- neither the wish nor the strength to rise, and following the guide's
- example I went off into an unhappy slumber, fancying I could hear
- ominous noises or feel tremblings within the recesses of the mountain.
- Thus the first night in the crater passed away.
- The next morning, a grey, heavy, cloudy sky seemed to droop over the
- summit of the cone. I did not know this first from the appearances of
- nature, but I found it out by my uncle's impetuous wrath.
- I soon found out the cause, and hope dawned again in my heart. For
- this reason.
- Of the three ways open before us, one had been taken by Saknussemm.
- The indications of the learned Icelander hinted at in the cryptogram,
- pointed to this fact that the shadow of Scartaris came to touch that
- particular way during the latter days of the month of June.
- That sharp peak might hence be considered as the gnomon of a vast sun
- dial, the shadow projected from which on a certain day would point
- out the road to the centre of the earth.
- Now, no sun no shadow, and therefore no guide. Here was June 25. If
- the sun was clouded for six days we must postpone our visit till next
- year.
- My limited powers of description would fail, were I to attempt a
- picture of the Professor's angry impatience. The day wore on, and no
- shadow came to lay itself along the bottom of the crater. Hans did
- not move from the spot he had selected; yet he must be asking himself
- what were we waiting for, if he asked himself anything at all. My
- uncle spoke not a word to me. His gaze, ever directed upwards, was
- lost in the grey and misty space beyond.
- On the 26th nothing yet. Rain mingled with snow was falling all day
- long. Hans built a hut of pieces of lava. I felt a malicious pleasure
- in watching the thousand rills and cascades that came tumbling down
- the sides of the cone, and the deafening continuous din awaked by
- every stone against which they bounded.
- My uncle's rage knew no bounds. It was enough to irritate a meeker
- man than he; for it was foundering almost within the port.
- But Heaven never sends unmixed grief, and for Professor Liedenbrock
- there was a satisfaction in store proportioned to his desperate
- anxieties.
- The next day the sky was again overcast; but on the 29th of June, the
- last day but one of the month, with the change of the moon came a
- change of weather. The sun poured a flood of light down the crater.
- Every hillock, every rock and stone, every projecting surface, had
- its share of the beaming torrent, and threw its shadow on the ground.
- Amongst them all, Scartaris laid down his sharp-pointed angular
- shadow which began to move slowly in the opposite direction to that
- of the radiant orb.
- My uncle turned too, and followed it.
- At noon, being at its least extent, it came and softly fell upon the
- edge of the middle chimney.
- "There it is! there it is!" shouted the Professor.
- "Now for the centre of the globe!" he added in Danish.
- I looked at Hans, to hear what he would say.
- "_For�t!_" was his tranquil answer.
- "Forward!" replied my uncle.
- It was thirteen minutes past one.
- CHAPTER XVII.
- VERTICAL DESCENT
- Now began our real journey. Hitherto our toil had overcome all
- difficulties, now difficulties would spring up at every step.
- I had not yet ventured to look down the bottomless pit into which I
- was about to take a plunge. The supreme hour had come. I might now
- either share in the enterprise or refuse to move forward. But I was
- ashamed to recoil in the presence of the hunter. Hans accepted the
- enterprise with such calmness, such indifference, such perfect
- disregard of any possible danger that I blushed at the idea of being
- less brave than he. If I had been alone I might have once more tried
- the effect of argument; but in the presence of the guide I held my
- peace; my heart flew back to my sweet Virlandaise, and I approached
- the central chimney.
- I have already mentioned that it was a hundred feet in diameter, and
- three hundred feet round. I bent over a projecting rock and gazed
- down. My hair stood on end with terror. The bewildering feeling of
- vacuity laid hold upon me. I felt my centre of gravity shifting its
- place, and giddiness mounting into my brain like drunkenness. There
- is nothing more treacherous than this attraction down deep abysses. I
- was just about to drop down, when a hand laid hold of me. It was that
- of Hans. I suppose I had not taken as many lessons on gulf
- exploration as I ought to have done in the Frelsers Kirk at
- Copenhagen.
- But, however short was my examination of this well, I had taken some
- account of its conformation. Its almost perpendicular walls were
- bristling with innumerable projections which would facilitate the
- descent. But if there was no want of steps, still there was no rail.
- A rope fastened to the edge of the aperture might have helped us
- down. But how were we to unfasten it, when arrived at the other end?
- My uncle employed a very simple expedient to obviate this difficulty.
- He uncoiled a cord of the thickness of a finger, and four hundred
- feet long; first he dropped half of it down, then he passed it round
- a lava block that projected conveniently, and threw the other half
- down the chimney. Each of us could then descend by holding with the
- hand both halves of the rope, which would not be able to unroll
- itself from its hold; when two hundred feet down, it would be easy to
- get possession of the whole of the rope by letting one end go and
- pulling down by the other. Then the exercise would go on again _ad
- infinitum_.
- "Now," said my uncle, after having completed these preparations, "now
- let us look to our loads. I will divide them into three lots; each of
- us will strap one upon his back. I mean only fragile articles."
- Of course, we were not included under that head.
- "Hans," said he, "will take charge of the tools and a portion of the
- provisions; you, Axel, will take another third of the provisions, and
- the arms; and I will take the rest of the provisions and the delicate
- instruments."
- "But," said I, "the clothes, and that mass of ladders and ropes, what
- is to become of them?"
- "They will go down by themselves."
- "How so?" I asked.
- "You will see presently."
- My uncle was always willing to employ magnificent resources. Obeying
- orders, Hans tied all the non-fragile articles in one bundle, corded
- them firmly, and sent them bodily down the gulf before us.
- I listened to the dull thuds of the descending bale. My uncle,
- leaning over the abyss, followed the descent of the luggage with a
- satisfied nod, and only rose erect when he had quite lost sight of it.
- "Very well, now it is our turn."
- Now I ask any sensible man if it was possible to hear those words
- without a shudder.
- The Professor fastened his package of instruments upon his shoulders;
- Hans took the tools; I took the arms: and the descent commenced in
- the following order; Hans, my uncle, and myself. It was effected in
- profound silence, broken only by the descent of loosened stones down
- the dark gulf.
- I dropped as it were, frantically clutching the double cord with one
- hand and buttressing myself from the wall with the other by means of
- my stick. One idea overpowered me almost, fear lest the rock should
- give way from which I was hanging. This cord seemed a fragile thing
- for three persons to be suspended from. I made as little use of it as
- possible, performing wonderful feats of equilibrium upon the lava
- projections which my foot seemed to catch hold of like a hand.
- When one of these slippery steps shook under the heavier form of
- Hans, he said in his tranquil voice:
- "_Gif akt!_"
- "Attention!" repeated my uncle.
- In half an hour we were standing upon the surface of a rock jammed in
- across the chimney from one side to the other.
- Hans pulled the rope by one of its ends, the other rose in the air;
- after passing the higher rock it came down again, bringing with it a
- rather dangerous shower of bits of stone and lava.
- Leaning over the edge of our narrow standing ground, I observed that
- the bottom of the hole was still invisible.
- The same manoeuvre was repeated with the cord, and half an hour after
- we had descended another two hundred feet.
- I don't suppose the maddest geologist under such circumstances would
- have studied the nature of the rocks that we were passing. I am sure
- I did trouble my head about them. Pliocene, miocene, eocene,
- cretaceous, jurassic, triassic, permian, carboniferous, devonian,
- silurian, or primitive was all one to me. But the Professor, no
- doubt, was pursuing his observations or taking notes, for in one of
- our halts he said to me:
- "The farther I go the more confidence I feel. The order of these
- volcanic formations affords the strongest confirmation to the
- theories of Davy. We are now among the primitive rocks, upon which
- the chemical operations took place which are produced by the contact
- of elementary bases of metals with water. I repudiate the notion of
- central heat altogether. We shall see further proof of that very
- soon."
- No variation, always the same conclusion. Of course, I was not
- inclined to argue. My silence was taken for consent and the descent
- went on.
- Another three hours, and I saw no bottom to the chimney yet. When I
- lifted my head I perceived the gradual contraction of its aperture.
- Its walls, by a gentle incline, were drawing closer to each other,
- and it was beginning to grow darker.
- Still we kept descending. It seemed to me that the falling stones
- were meeting with an earlier resistance, and that the concussion gave
- a more abrupt and deadened sound.
- As I had taken care to keep an exact account of our manoeuvres with
- the rope, which I knew that we had repeated fourteen times, each
- descent occupying half an hour, the conclusion was easy that we had
- been seven hours, plus fourteen quarters of rest, making ten hours
- and a half. We had started at one, it must therefore now be eleven
- o'clock; and the depth to which we had descended was fourteen times
- 200 feet, or 2,800 feet.
- At this moment I heard the voice of Hans.
- "Halt!" he cried.
- I stopped short just as I was going to place my feet upon my uncle's
- head.
- "We are there," he cried.
- "Where?" said I, stepping near to him.
- "At the bottom of the perpendicular chimney," he answered.
- "Is there no way farther?"
- "Yes; there is a sort of passage which inclines to the right. We will
- see about that to-morrow. Let us have our supper, and go to sleep."
- The darkness was not yet complete. The provision case was opened; we
- refreshed ourselves, and went to sleep as well as we could upon a bed
- of stones and lava fragments.
- When lying on my back, I opened my eyes and saw a bright sparkling
- point of light at the extremity of the gigantic tube 3,000 feet long,
- now a vast telescope.
- It was a star which, seen from this depth, had lost all
- scintillation, and which by my computation should be 46; _Ursa
- minor._ Then I fell fast asleep.
- CHAPTER XVIII.
- THE WONDERS OF TERRESTRIAL DEPTHS
- At eight in the morning a ray of daylight came to wake us up. The
- thousand shining surfaces of lava on the walls received it on its
- passage, and scattered it like a shower of sparks.
- There was light enough to distinguish surrounding objects.
- "Well, Axel, what do you say to it?" cried my uncle, rubbing his
- hands. "Did you ever spend a quieter night in our little house at
- K�nigsberg? No noise of cart wheels, no cries of basket women, no
- boatmen shouting!"
- "No doubt it is very quiet at the bottom of this well, but there is
- something alarming in the quietness itself."
- "Now come!" my uncle cried; "if you are frightened already, what will
- you be by and by? We have not gone a single inch yet into the bowels
- of the earth."
- "What do you mean?"
- "I mean that we have only reached the level of the island, long
- vertical tube, which terminates at the mouth of the crater, has its
- lower end only at the level of the sea."
- "Are you sure of that?"
- "Quite sure. Consult the barometer."
- In fact, the mercury, which had risen in the instrument as fast as we
- descended, had stopped at twenty-nine inches.
- "You see," said the Professor, "we have now only the pressure of our
- atmosphere, and I shall be glad when the aneroid takes the place of
- the barometer."
- And in truth this instrument would become useless as soon as the
- weight of the atmosphere should exceed the pressure ascertained at
- the level of the sea.
- "But," I said, "is there not reason to fear that this ever-increasing
- pressure will become at last very painful to bear?"
- "No; we shall descend at a slow rate, and our lungs will become
- inured to a denser atmosphere. Aeronauts find the want of air as they
- rise to high elevations, but we shall perhaps have too much: of the
- two, this is what I should prefer. Don't let us lose a moment. Where
- is the bundle we sent down before us?"
- I then remembered that we had searched for it in vain the evening
- before. My uncle questioned Hans, who, after having examined
- attentively with the eye of a huntsman, replied:
- "_Der huppe!_"
- "Up there."
- And so it was. The bundle had been caught by a projection a hundred
- feet above us. Immediately the Icelander climbed up like a cat, and
- in a few minutes the package was in our possession.
- "Now," said my uncle, "let us breakfast; but we must lay in a good
- stock, for we don't know how long we may have to go on."
- The biscuit and extract of meat were washed down with a draught of
- water mingled with a little gin.
- Breakfast over, my uncle drew from his pocket a small notebook,
- intended for scientific observations. He consulted his instruments,
- and recorded:
- "Monday, July 1.
- "Chronometer, 8.17 a.m.; barometer, 297 in.; thermometer, 6� (43�
- F.). Direction, E.S.E."
- This last observation applied to the dark gallery, and was indicated
- by the compass.
- "Now, Axel," cried the Professor with enthusiasm, "now we are really
- going into the interior of the earth. At this precise moment the
- journey commences."
- So saying, my uncle took in one hand Ruhmkorff's apparatus, which was
- hanging from his neck; and with the other he formed an electric
- communication with the coil in the lantern, and a sufficiently bright
- light dispersed the darkness of the passage.
- Hans carried the other apparatus, which was also put into action.
- This ingenious application of electricity would enable us to go on
- for a long time by creating an artificial light even in the midst of
- the most inflammable gases.
- "Now, march!" cried my uncle.
- Each shouldered his package. Hans drove before him the load of cords
- and clothes; and, myself walking last, we entered the gallery.
- At the moment of becoming engulfed in this dark gallery, I raised my
- head, and saw for the last time through the length of that vast tube
- the sky of Iceland, which I was never to behold again.
- The lava, in the last eruption of 1229, had forced a passage through
- this tunnel. It still lined the walls with a thick and glistening
- coat. The electric light was here intensified a hundredfold by
- reflection.
- The only difficulty in proceeding lay in not sliding too fast down an
- incline of about forty-five degrees; happily certain asperities and a
- few blisterings here and there formed steps, and we descended,
- letting our baggage slip before us from the end of a long rope.
- But that which formed steps under our feet became stalactites
- overhead. The lava, which was porous in many places, had formed a
- surface covered with small rounded blisters; crystals of opaque
- quartz, set with limpid tears of glass, and hanging like clustered
- chandeliers from the vaulted roof, seemed as it were to kindle and
- form a sudden illumination as we passed on our way. It seemed as if
- the genii of the depths were lighting up their palace to receive
- their terrestrial guests.
- "It is magnificent!" I cried spontaneously. "My uncle, what a sight!
- Don't you admire those blending hues of lava, passing from reddish
- brown to bright yellow by imperceptible shades? And these crystals
- are just like globes of light."
- "Ali, you think so, do you, Axel, my boy? Well, you will see greater
- splendours than these, I hope. Now let us march: march!"
- He had better have said slide, for we did nothing but drop down the
- steep inclines. It was the facifs _descensus Averni_ of Virgil. The
- compass, which I consulted frequently, gave our direction as
- south-east with inflexible steadiness. This lava stream deviated
- neither to the right nor to the left.
- Yet there was no sensible increase of temperature. This justified
- Davy's theory, and more than once I consulted the thermometer with
- surprise. Two hours after our departure it only marked 10� (50�
- Fahr.), an increase of only 4�. This gave reason for believing that
- our descent was more horizontal than vertical. As for the exact depth
- reached, it was very easy to ascertain that; the Professor measured
- accurately the angles of deviation and inclination on the road, but
- he kept the results to himself.
- About eight in the evening he signalled to stop. Hans sat down at
- once. The lamps were hung upon a projection in the lava; we were in a
- sort of cavern where there was plenty of air. Certain puffs of air
- reached us. What atmospheric disturbance was the cause of them? I
- could not answer that question at the moment. Hunger and fatigue made
- me incapable of reasoning. A descent of seven hours consecutively is
- not made without considerable expenditure of strength. I was
- exhausted. The order to 'halt' therefore gave me pleasure. Hans laid
- our provisions upon a block of lava, and we ate with a good appetite.
- But one thing troubled me, our supply of water was half consumed. My
- uncle reckoned upon a fresh supply from subterranean sources, but
- hitherto we had met with none. I could not help drawing his attention
- to this circumstance.
- "Are you surprised at this want of springs?" he said.
- "More than that, I am anxious about it; we have only water enough for
- five days."
- "Don't be uneasy, Axel, we shall find more than we want."
- "When?"
- "When we have left this bed of lava behind us. How could springs
- break through such walls as these?"
- "But perhaps this passage runs to a very great depth. It seems to me
- that we have made no great progress vertically."
- "Why do you suppose that?"
- "Because if we had gone deep into the crust of earth, we should have
- encountered greater heat."
- "According to your system," said my uncle. "But what does the
- thermometer say?"
- "Hardly fifteen degrees (59� Fahr), nine degrees only since our
- departure."
- "Well, what is your conclusion?"
- "This is my conclusion. According to exact observations, the increase
- of temperature in the interior of the globe advances at the rate of
- one degree (1 4/5� Fahr.) for every hundred feet. But certain local
- conditions may modify this rate. Thus at Yakoutsk in Siberia the
- increase of a degree is ascertained to be reached every 36 feet. This
- difference depends upon the heat-conducting power of the rocks.
- Moreover, in the neighbourhood of an extinct volcano, through gneiss,
- it has been observed that the increase of a degree is only attained
- at every 125 feet. Let us therefore assume this last hypothesis as
- the most suitable to our situation, and calculate."
- "Well, do calculate, my boy."
- "Nothing is easier," said I, putting down figures in my note book.
- "Nine times a hundred and twenty-five feet gives a depth of eleven
- hundred and twenty-five feet."
- "Very accurate indeed."
- "Well?"
- "By my observation we are at 10,000 feet below the level of the sea."
- "Is that possible?"
- "Yes, or figures are of no use."
- The Professor's calculations were quite correct. We had already
- attained a depth of six thousand feet beyond that hitherto reached by
- the foot of man, such as the mines of Kitz Bahl in Tyrol, and those
- of Wuttembourg in Bohemia.
- The temperature, which ought to have been 81� (178� Fahr.) was
- scarcely 15� (59� Fahr.). Here was cause for reflection.
- CHAPTER XIX.
- GEOLOGICAL STUDIES IN SITU
- Next day, Tuesday, June 30, at 6 a.m., the descent began again.
- We were still following the gallery of lava, a real natural
- staircase, and as gently sloping as those inclined planes which in
- some old houses are still found instead of flights of steps. And so
- we went on until 12.17, the, precise moment when we overtook Hans,
- who had stopped.
- "Ah! here we are," exclaimed my uncle, "at the very end of the
- chimney."
- I looked around me. We were standing at the intersection of two
- roads, both dark and narrow. Which were we to take? This was a
- difficulty.
- Still my uncle refused to admit an appearance of hesitation, either
- before me or the guide; he pointed out the Eastern tunnel, and we
- were soon all three in it.
- Besides there would have been interminable hesitation before this
- choice of roads; for since there was no indication whatever to guide
- our choice, we were obliged to trust to chance.
- The slope of this gallery was scarcely perceptible, and its sections
- very unequal. Sometimes we passed a series of arches succeeding each
- other like the majestic arcades of a gothic cathedral. Here the
- architects of the middle ages might have found studies for every form
- of the sacred art which sprang from the development of the pointed
- arch. A mile farther we had to bow our heads under corniced elliptic
- arches in the romanesque style; and massive pillars standing out from
- the wall bent under the spring of the vault that rested heavily upon
- them. In other places this magnificence gave way to narrow channels
- between low structures which looked like beaver's huts, and we had to
- creep along through extremely narrow passages.
- The heat was perfectly bearable. Involuntarily I began to think of
- its heat when the lava thrown out by Sn�fell was boiling and working
- through this now silent road. I imagined the torrents of fire hurled
- back at every angle in the gallery, and the accumulation of intensely
- heated vapours in the midst of this confined channel.
- I only hope, thought I, that this so-called extinct volcano won't
- take a fancy in his old age to begin his sports again!
- I abstained from communicating these fears to Professor Liedenbrock. He
- would never have understood them at all. He had but one idea--forward!
- He walked, he slid, he scrambled, he tumbled, with a persistency which
- one could not but admire.
- By six in the evening, after a not very fatiguing walk, we had gone
- two leagues south, but scarcely a quarter of a mile down.
- My uncle said it was time to go to sleep. We ate without talking, and
- went to sleep without reflection.
- Our arrangements for the night were very simple; a railway rug each,
- into which we rolled ourselves, was our sole covering. We had neither
- cold nor intrusive visits to fear. Travellers who penetrate into the
- wilds of central Africa, and into the pathless forests of the New
- World, are obliged to watch over each other by night. But we enjoyed
- absolute safety and utter seclusion; no savages or wild beasts
- infested these silent depths.
- Next morning, we awoke fresh and in good spirits. The road was
- resumed. As the day before, we followed the path of the lava. It was
- impossible to tell what rocks we were passing: the tunnel, instead of
- tending lower, approached more and more nearly to a horizontal
- direction, I even fancied a slight rise. But about ten this upward
- tendency became so evident, and therefore so fatiguing, that I was
- obliged to slacken my pace.
- "Well, Axel?" demanded the Professor impatiently.
- "Well, I cannot stand it any longer," I replied.
- "What! after three hours' walk over such easy ground."
- "It may be easy, but it is tiring all the same."
- "What, when we have nothing to do but keep going down!"
- "Going up, if you please."
- "Going up!" said my uncle, with a shrug.
- "No doubt, for the last half-hour the inclines have gone the other
- way, and at this rate we shall soon arrive upon the level soil of
- Iceland."
- The Professor nodded slowly and uneasily like a man that declines to
- be convinced. I tried to resume the conversation. He answered not a
- word, and gave the signal for a start. I saw that his silence was
- nothing but ill-humour.
- Still I had courageously shouldered my burden again, and was rapidly
- following Hans, whom my uncle preceded. I was anxious not to be left
- behind. My greatest care was not to lose sight of my companions. I
- shuddered at the thought of being lost in the mazes of this vast
- subterranean labyrinth.
- Besides, if the ascending road did become steeper, I was comforted
- with the thought that it was bringing us nearer to the surface. There
- was hope in this. Every step confirmed me in it, and I was rejoicing
- at the thought of meeting my little Gr�uben again.
- By mid-day there was a change in the appearance of this wall of the
- gallery. I noticed it by a diminution of the amount of light
- reflected from the sides; solid rock was appearing in the place of
- the lava coating. The mass was composed of inclined and sometimes
- vertical strata. We were passing through rocks of the transition or
- silurian [1] system.
- "It is evident," I cried, "the marine deposits formed in the second
- period, these shales, limestones, and sandstones. We are turning away
- from the primary granite. We are just as if we were people of Hamburg
- going to L�beck by way of Hanover!"
- I had better have kept my observations to myself. But my geological
- instinct was stronger than my prudence, and uncle Liedenbrock heard
- my exclamation.
- "What's that you are saying?" he asked.
- "See," I said, pointing to the varied series of sandstones and
- limestones, and the first indication of slate.
- "Well?"
- "We are at the period when the first plants and animals appeared."
- "Do you think so?"
- "Look close, and examine."
- I obliged the Professor to move his lamp over the walls of the
- gallery. I expected some signs of astonishment; but he spoke not a
- word, and went on.
- Had he understood me or not? Did he refuse to admit, out of self-love
- as an uncle and a philosopher, that he had mistaken his way when he
- chose the eastern tunnel? or was he determined to examine this
- passage to its farthest extremity? It was evident that we had left
- the lava path, and that this road could not possibly lead to the
- extinct furnace of Sn�fell.
- Yet I asked myself if I was not depending too much on this change in
- the rock. Might I not myself be mistaken? Were we really crossing the
- layers of rock which overlie the granite foundation?
- [1]The name given by Sir Roderick Murchison to a vast series of
- fossiliferous strata, which lies between the non-fossiliferous slaty
- schists below and the old red sandstone above. The system is well
- developed in the region of Shropshire, etc., once inhabited by the
- Silures under Caractacus, or Caradoc. (Tr.)
- If I am right, I thought, I must soon find some fossil remains of
- primitive life; and then we must yield to evidence. I will look.
- I had not gone a hundred paces before incontestable proofs presented
- themselves. It could not be otherwise, for in the Silurian age the
- seas contained at least fifteen hundred vegetable and animal species.
- My feet, which had become accustomed to the indurated lava floor,
- suddenly rested upon a dust composed of the _debris_ of plants and
- shells. In the walls were distinct impressions of fucoids and
- lycopodites.
- Professor Liedenbrock could not be mistaken, I thought, and yet he
- pushed on, with, I suppose, his eyes resolutely shut.
- This was only invincible obstinacy. I could hold out no longer. I
- picked up a perfectly formed shell, which had belonged to an animal
- not unlike the woodlouse: then, joining my uncle, I said:
- "Look at this!"
- "Very well," said he quietly, "it is the shell of a crustacean, of an
- extinct species called a trilobite. Nothing more."
- "But don't you conclude--?"
- "Just what you conclude yourself. Yes; I do, perfectly. We have left
- the granite and the lava. It is possible that I may be mistaken. But
- I cannot be sure of that until I have reached the very end of this
- gallery."
- "You are right in doing this, my uncle, and I should quite approve of
- your determination, if there were not a danger threatening us nearer
- and nearer."
- "What danger?"
- "The want of water."
- "Well, Axel, we will put ourselves upon rations."
- CHAPTER XX.
- THE FIRST SIGNS OF DISTRESS
- In fact, we had to ration ourselves. Our provision of water could not
- last more than three days. I found that out for certain when
- supper-time came. And, to our sorrow, we had little reason to expect
- to find a spring in these transition beds.
- The whole of the next day the gallery opened before us its endless
- arcades. We moved on almost without a word. Hans' silence seemed to
- be infecting us.
- The road was now not ascending, at least not perceptibly. Sometimes,
- even, it seemed to have a slight fall. But this tendency, which was
- very trifling, could not do anything to reassure the Professor; for
- there was no change in the beds, and the transitional characteristics
- became more and more decided.
- The electric light was reflected in sparkling splendour from the
- schist, limestone, and old red sandstone of the walls. It might have
- been thought that we were passing through a section of Wales, of
- which an ancient people gave its name to this system. Specimens of
- magnificent marbles clothed the walls, some of a greyish agate
- fantastically veined with white, others of rich crimson or yellow
- dashed with splotches of red; then came dark cherry-coloured marbles
- relieved by the lighter tints of limestone.
- The greater part of these bore impressions of primitive organisms.
- Creation had evidently advanced since the day before. Instead of
- rudimentary trilobites, I noticed remains of a more perfect order of
- beings, amongst others ganoid fishes and some of those sauroids in
- which palaeontologists have discovered the earliest reptile forms.
- The Devonian seas were peopled by animals of these species, and
- deposited them by thousands in the rocks of the newer formation.
- It was evident that we were ascending that scale of animal life in
- which man fills the highest place. But Professor Liedenbrock seemed
- not to notice it.
- He was awaiting one of two events, either the appearance of a
- vertical well opening before his feet, down which our descent might
- be resumed, or that of some obstacle which should effectually turn us
- back on our own footsteps. But evening came and neither wish was
- gratified.
- On Friday, after a night during which I felt pangs of thirst, our
- little troop again plunged into the winding passages of the gallery.
- After ten hours' walking I observed a singular deadening of the
- reflection of our lamps from the side walls. The marble, the schist,
- the limestone, and the sandstone were giving way to a dark and
- lustreless lining. At one moment, the tunnel becoming very narrow, I
- leaned against the wall.
- When I removed my hand it was black. I looked nearer, and found we
- were in a coal formation.
- "A coal mine!" I cried.
- "A mine without miners," my uncle replied.
- "Who knows?" I asked.
- "I know," the Professor pronounced decidedly, "I am certain that this
- gallery driven through beds of coal was never pierced by the hand of
- man. But whether it be the hand of nature or not does not matter.
- Supper time is come; let us sup."
- Hans prepared some food. I scarcely ate, and I swallowed down the few
- drops of water rationed out to me. One flask half full was all we had
- left to slake the thirst of three men.
- After their meal my two companions laid themselves down upon their
- rugs, and found in sleep a solace for their fatigue. But I could not
- sleep, and I counted every hour until morning.
- On Saturday, at six, we started afresh. In twenty minutes we reached
- a vast open space; I then knew that the hand of man had not hollowed
- out this mine; the vaults would have been shored up, and, as it was,
- they seemed to be held up by a miracle of equilibrium.
- This cavern was about a hundred feet wide and a hundred and fifty in
- height. A large mass had been rent asunder by a subterranean
- disturbance. Yielding to some vast power from below it had broken
- asunder, leaving this great hollow into which human beings were now
- penetrating for the first time.
- The whole history of the carboniferous period was written upon these
- gloomy walls, and a geologist might with ease trace all its diverse
- phases. The beds of coal were separated by strata of sandstone or
- compact clays, and appeared crushed under the weight of overlying
- strata.
- At the age of the world which preceded the secondary period, the
- earth was clothed with immense vegetable forms, the product of the
- double influence of tropical heat and constant moisture; a vapoury
- atmosphere surrounded the earth, still veiling the direct rays of the
- sun.
- Thence arises the conclusion that the high temperature then existing
- was due to some other source than the heat of the sun. Perhaps even
- the orb of day may not have been ready yet to play the splendid part
- he now acts. There were no 'climates' as yet, and a torrid heat,
- equal from pole to equator, was spread over the whole surface of the
- globe. Whence this heat? Was it from the interior of the earth?
- Notwithstanding the theories of Professor Liedenbrock, a violent heat
- did at that time brood within the body of the spheroid. Its action
- was felt to the very last coats of the terrestrial crust; the plants,
- unacquainted with the beneficent influences of the sun, yielded
- neither flowers nor scent. But their roots drew vigorous life from
- the burning soil of the early days of this planet.
- There were but few trees. Herbaceous plants alone existed. There were
- tall grasses, ferns, lycopods, besides sigillaria, asterophyllites,
- now scarce plants, but then the species might be counted by thousands.
- The coal measures owe their origin to this period of profuse
- vegetation. The yet elastic and yielding crust of the earth obeyed
- the fluid forces beneath. Thence innumerable fissures and
- depressions. The plants, sunk underneath the waters, formed by
- degrees into vast accumulated masses.
- Then came the chemical action of nature; in the depths of the seas
- the vegetable accumulations first became peat; then, acted upon by
- generated gases and the heat of fermentation, they underwent a
- process of complete mineralization.
- Thus were formed those immense coalfields, which nevertheless, are
- not inexhaustible, and which three centuries at the present
- accelerated rate of consumption will exhaust unless the industrial
- world will devise a remedy.
- These reflections came into my mind whilst I was contemplating the
- mineral wealth stored up in this portion of the globe. These no
- doubt, I thought, will never be discovered; the working of such deep
- mines would involve too large an outlay, and where would be the use
- as long as coal is yet spread far and wide near the surface? Such as
- my eyes behold these virgin stores, such they will be when this world
- comes to an end.
- But still we marched on, and I alone was forgetting the length of the
- way by losing myself in the midst of geological contemplations. The
- temperature remained what it had been during our passage through the
- lava and schists. Only my sense of smell was forcibly affected by an
- odour of protocarburet of hydrogen. I immediately recognised in this
- gallery the presence of a considerable quantity of the dangerous gas
- called by miners firedamp, the explosion of which has often
- occasioned such dreadful catastrophes.
- Happily, our light was from Ruhmkorff's ingenious apparatus. If
- unfortunately we had explored this gallery with torches, a terrible
- explosion would have put an end to travelling and travellers at one
- stroke.
- This excursion through the coal mine lasted till night. My uncle
- scarcely could restrain his impatience at the horizontal road. The
- darkness, always deep twenty yards before us, prevented us from
- estimating the length of the gallery; and I was beginning to think it
- must be endless, when suddenly at six o'clock a wall very
- unexpectedly stood before us. Right or left, top or bottom, there was
- no road farther; we were at the end of a blind alley. "Very well,
- it's all right!" cried my uncle, "now, at any rate, we shall know
- what we are about. We are not in Saknussemm's road, and all we have
- to do is to go back. Let us take a night's rest, and in three days we
- shall get to the fork in the road." "Yes," said I, "if we have any
- strength left." "Why not?" "Because to-morrow we shall have no
- water." "Nor courage either?" asked my uncle severely. I dared make
- no answer.
- CHAPTER XXI.
- COMPASSION FUSES THE PROFESSOR'S HEART
- Next day we started early. We had to hasten forward. It was a three
- days' march to the cross roads.
- I will not speak of the sufferings we endured in our return. My uncle
- bore them with the angry impatience of a man obliged to own his
- weakness; Hans with the resignation of his passive nature; I, I
- confess, with complaints and expressions of despair. I had no spirit
- to oppose this ill fortune.
- As I had foretold, the water failed entirely by the end of the first
- day's retrograde march. Our fluid aliment was now nothing but gin;
- but this infernal fluid burned my throat, and I could not even endure
- the sight of it. I found the temperature and the air stifling.
- Fatigue paralysed my limbs. More than once I dropped down motionless.
- Then there was a halt; and my uncle and the Icelander did their best
- to restore me. But I saw that the former was struggling painfully
- against excessive fatigue and the tortures of thirst.
- At last, on Tuesday, July 8, we arrived on our hands and knees, and
- half dead, at the junction of the two roads. There I dropped like a
- lifeless lump, extended on the lava soil. It was ten in the morning.
- Hans and my uncle, clinging to the wall, tried to nibble a few bits
- of biscuit. Long moans escaped from my swollen lips.
- After some time my uncle approached me and raised me in his arms.
- "Poor boy!" said he, in genuine tones of compassion.
- I was touched with these words, not being accustomed to see the
- excitable Professor in a softened mood. I grasped his trembling hands
- in mine. He let me hold them and looked at me. His eyes were
- moistened.
- Then I saw him take the flask that was hanging at his side. To my
- amazement he placed it on my lips.
- "Drink!" said he.
- Had I heard him? Was my uncle beside himself? I stared at, him
- stupidly, and felt as if I could not understand him.
- "Drink!" he said again.
- And raising his flask he emptied it every drop between my lips.
- Oh! infinite pleasure! a slender sip of water came to moisten my
- burning mouth. It was but one sip but it was enough to recall my
- ebbing life.
- I thanked my uncle with clasped hands.
- "Yes," he said, "a draught of water; but it is the very last--you
- hear!--the last. I had kept it as a precious treasure at the bottom
- of my flask. Twenty times, nay, a hundred times, have I fought
- against a frightful impulse to drink it off. But no, Axel, I kept it
- for you."
- "My dear uncle," I said, whilst hot tears trickled down my face.
- "Yes, my poor boy, I knew that as soon as you arrived at these cross
- roads you would drop half dead, and I kept my last drop of water to
- reanimate you."
- "Thank you, thank you," I said. Although my thirst was only partially
- quenched, yet some strength had returned. The muscles of my throat,
- until then contracted, now relaxed again; and the inflammation of my
- lips abated somewhat; and I was now able to speak. .
- "Let us see," I said, "we have now but one thing to do. We have no
- water; we must go back."
- While I spoke my uncle avoided looking at me; he hung his head down;
- his eyes avoided mine.
- "We must return," I exclaimed vehemently; "we must go back on our way
- to Sn�fell. May God give us strength to climb up the crater again!"
- "Return!" said my uncle, as if he was rather answering himself than
- me.
- "Yes, return, without the loss of a minute."
- A long silence followed.
- "So then, Axel," replied the Professor ironically, "you have found no
- courage or energy in these few drops of water?"
- "Courage?"
- "I see you just as feeble-minded as you were before, and still
- expressing only despair!"
- What sort of a man was this I had to do with, and what schemes was he
- now revolving in his fearless mind?
- "What! you won't go back?"
- "Should I renounce this expedition just when we have the fairest
- chance of success! Never!"
- "Then must we resign ourselves to destruction?"
- "No, Axel, no; go back. Hans will go with you. Leave me to myself!"
- "Leave you here!"
- "Leave me, I tell you. I have undertaken this expedition. I will
- carry it out to the end, and I will not return. Go, Axel, go!"
- My uncle was in high state of excitement. His voice, which had for a
- moment been tender and gentle, had now become hard and threatening.
- He was struggling with gloomy resolutions against impossibilities. I
- would not leave him in this bottomless abyss, and on the other hand
- the instinct of self-preservation prompted me to fly.
- The guide watched this scene with his usual phlegmatic unconcern. Yet
- he understood perfectly well what was going on between his two
- companions. The gestures themselves were sufficient to show that we
- were each bent on taking a different road; but Hans seemed to take no
- part in a question upon which depended his life. He was ready to
- start at a given signal, or to stay, if his master so willed it.
- How I wished at this moment I could have made him understand me. My
- words, my complaints, my sorrow would have had some influence over
- that frigid nature. Those dangers which our guide could not
- understand I could have demonstrated and proved to him. Together we
- might have over-ruled the obstinate Professor; if it were needed, we
- might perhaps have compelled him to regain the heights of Sn�fell.
- I drew near to Hans. I placed my hand upon his. He made no movement.
- My parted lips sufficiently revealed my sufferings. The Icelander
- slowly moved his head, and calmly pointing to my uncle said:
- "Master."
- "Master!" I shouted; "you madman! no, he is not the master of our
- life; we must fly, we must drag him. Do you hear me? Do you
- understand?"
- I had seized Hans by the arm. I wished to oblige him to rise. I
- strove with him. My uncle interposed.
- "Be calm, Axel! you will get nothing from that immovable servant.
- Therefore, listen to my proposal."
- I crossed my arms, and confronted my uncle boldly.
- "The want of water," he said, "is the only obstacle in our way. In
- this eastern gallery made up of lavas, schists, and coal, we have not
- met with a single particle of moisture. Perhaps we shall be more
- fortunate if we follow the western tunnel."
- I shook my head incredulously.
- "Hear me to the end," the Professor went on with a firm voice.
- "Whilst you were lying there motionless, I went to examine the
- conformation of that gallery. It penetrates directly downward, and in
- a few hours it will bring us to the granite rocks. There we must meet
- with abundant springs. The nature of the rock assures me of this, and
- instinct agrees with logic to support my conviction. Now, this is my
- proposal. When Columbus asked of his ships' crews for three days more
- to discover a new world, those crews, disheartened and sick as they
- were, recognised the justice of the claim, and he discovered America.
- I am the Columbus of this nether world, and I only ask for one more
- day. If in a single day I have not met with the water that we want, I
- swear to you we will return to the surface of the earth."
- In spite of my irritation I was moved with these words, as well as
- with the violence my uncle was doing to his own wishes in making so
- hazardous a proposal.
- "Well," I said, "do as you will, and God reward your superhuman
- energy. You have now but a few hours to tempt fortune. Let us start!"
- CHAPTER XXII.
- TOTAL FAILURE OF WATER
- This time the descent commenced by the new gallery. Hans walked first
- as was his custom.
- We had not gone a hundred yards when the Professor, moving his
- lantern along the walls, cried:
- "Here are primitive rocks. Now we are in the right way. Forward!"
- When in its early stages the earth was slowly cooling, its
- contraction gave rise in its crust to disruptions, distortions,
- fissures, and chasms. The passage through which we were moving was
- such a fissure, through which at one time granite poured out in a
- molten state. Its thousands of windings formed an inextricable
- labyrinth through the primeval mass.
- As fast as we descended, the succession of beds forming the primitive
- foundation came out with increasing distinctness. Geologists consider
- this primitive matter to be the base of the mineral crust of the
- earth, and have ascertained it to be composed of three different
- formations, schist, gneiss, and mica schist, resting upon that
- unchangeable foundation, the granite.
- Never had mineralogists found themselves in so marvellous a situation
- to study nature in situ. What the boring machine, an insensible,
- inert instrument, was unable to bring to the surface of the inner
- structure of the globe, we were able to peruse with our own eyes and
- handle with our own hands.
- Through the beds of schist, coloured with delicate shades of green,
- ran in winding course threads of copper and manganese, with traces of
- platinum and gold. I thought, what riches are here buried at an
- unapproachable depth in the earth, hidden for ever from the covetous
- eyes of the human race! These treasures have been buried at such a
- profound depth by the convulsions of primeval times that they run no
- chance of ever being molested by the pickaxe or the spade.
- To the schists succeeded gneiss, partially stratified, remarkable for
- the parallelism and regularity of its lamina, then mica schists, laid
- in large plates or flakes, revealing their lamellated structure by
- the sparkle of the white shining mica.
- The light from our apparatus, reflected from the small facets of
- quartz, shot sparkling rays at every angle, and I seemed to be moving
- through a diamond, within which the quickly darting rays broke across
- each other in a thousand flashing coruscations.
- About six o'clock this brilliant fete of illuminations underwent a
- sensible abatement of splendour, then almost ceased. The walls
- assumed a crystallised though sombre appearance; mica was more
- closely mingled with the feldspar and quartz to form the proper rocky
- foundations of the earth, which bears without distortion or crushing
- the weight of the four terrestrial systems. We were immured within
- prison walls of granite.
- It was eight in the evening. No signs of water had yet appeared. I
- was suffering horribly. My uncle strode on. He refused to stop. He
- was listening anxiously for the murmur of distant springs. But, no,
- there was dead silence.
- And now my limbs were failing beneath me. I resisted pain and
- torture, that I might not stop my uncle, which would have driven him
- to despair, for the day was drawing near to its end, and it was his
- last.
- At last I failed utterly; I uttered a cry and fell.
- "Come to me, I am dying."
- My uncle retraced his steps. He gazed upon me with his arms crossed;
- then these muttered words passed his lips:
- "It's all over!"
- The last thing I saw was a fearful gesture of rage, and my eyes
- closed.
- When I reopened them I saw my two companions motionless and rolled up
- in their coverings. Were they asleep? As for me, I could not get one
- moment's sleep. I was suffering too keenly, and what embittered my
- thoughts was that there was no remedy. My uncle's last words echoed
- painfully in my ears: "it's all over!" For in such a fearful state of
- debility it was madness to think of ever reaching the upper world
- again.
- We had above us a league and a half of terrestrial crust. The weight
- of it seemed to be crushing down upon my shoulders. I felt weighed
- down, and I exhausted myself with imaginary violent exertions to turn
- round upon my granite couch.
- A few hours passed away. A deep silence reigned around us, the
- silence of the grave. No sound could reach us through walls, the
- thinnest of which were five miles thick.
- Yet in the midst of my stupefaction I seemed to be aware of a noise.
- It was dark down the tunnel, but I seemed to see the Icelander
- vanishing from our sight with the lamp in his hand.
- Why was he leaving us? Was Hans going to forsake us? My uncle was
- fast asleep. I wanted to shout, but my voice died upon my parched and
- swollen lips. The darkness became deeper, and the last sound died
- away in the far distance.
- "Hans has abandoned us," I cried. "Hans! Hans!"
- But these words were only spoken within me. They went no farther. Yet
- after the first moment of terror I felt ashamed of suspecting a man
- of such extraordinary faithfulness. Instead of ascending he was
- descending the gallery. An evil design would have taken him up not
- down. This reflection restored me to calmness, and I turned to other
- thoughts. None but some weighty motive could have induced so quiet a
- man to forfeit his sleep. Was he on a journey of discovery? Had he
- during the silence of the night caught a sound, a murmuring of
- something in the distance, which had failed to affect my hearing?
- CHAPTER XXIII.
- WATER DISCOVERED
- For a whole hour I was trying to work out in my delirious brain the
- reasons which might have influenced this seemingly tranquil huntsman.
- The absurdest notions ran in utter confusion through my mind. I
- thought madness was coming on!
- But at last a noise of footsteps was heard in the dark abyss. Hans
- was approaching. A flickering light was beginning to glimmer on the
- wall of our darksome prison; then it came out full at the mouth of
- the gallery. Hans appeared.
- He drew close to my uncle, laid his hand upon his shoulder, and
- gently woke him. My uncle rose up.
- "What is the matter?" he asked.
- "_Watten!_" replied the huntsman.
- No doubt under the inspiration of intense pain everybody becomes
- endowed with the gift of divers tongues. I did not know a word of
- Danish, yet instinctively I understood the word he had uttered.
- "Water! water!" I cried, clapping my hands and gesticulating like a
- madman.
- "Water!" repeated my uncle. "Hvar?" he asked, in Icelandic.
- "_Nedat,_" replied Hans.
- "Where? Down below!" I understood it all. I seized the hunter's
- hands, and pressed them while he looked on me without moving a muscle
- of his countenance.
- The preparations for our departure were not long in making, and we
- were soon on our way down a passage inclining two feet in seven. In
- an hour we had gone a mile and a quarter, and descended two thousand
- feet.
- Then I began to hear distinctly quite a new sound of something
- running within the thickness of the granite wall, a kind of dull,
- dead rumbling, like distant thunder. During the first part of our
- walk, not meeting with the promised spring, I felt my agony
- returning; but then my uncle acquainted me with the cause of the
- strange noise.
- "Hans was not mistaken," he said. "What you hear is the rushing of a
- torrent."
- "A torrent?" I exclaimed.
- "There can be no doubt; a subterranean river is flowing around us."
- We hurried forward in the greatest excitement. I was no longer
- sensible of my fatigue. This murmuring of waters close at hand was
- already refreshing me. It was audibly increasing. The torrent, after
- having for some time flowed over our heads, was now running within
- the left wall, roaring and rushing. Frequently I touched the wall,
- hoping to feel some indications of moisture: But there was no hope
- here.
- Yet another half hour, another half league was passed.
- Then it became clear that the hunter had gone no farther. Guided by
- an instinct peculiar to mountaineers he had as it were felt this
- torrent through the rock; but he had certainly seen none of the
- precious liquid; he had drunk nothing himself.
- Soon it became evident that if we continued our walk we should widen
- the distance between ourselves and the stream, the noise of which was
- becoming fainter.
- We returned. Hans stopped where the torrent seemed closest. I sat
- near the wall, while the waters were flowing past me at a distance of
- two feet with extreme violence. But there was a thick granite wall
- between us and the object of our desires.
- Without reflection, without asking if there were any means of
- procuring the water, I gave way to a movement of despair.
- Hans glanced at me with, I thought, a smile of compassion.
- He rose and took the lamp. I followed him. He moved towards the wall.
- I looked on. He applied his ear against the dry stone, and moved it
- slowly to and fro, listening intently. I perceived at once that he
- was examining to find the exact place where the torrent could be
- heard the loudest. He met with that point on the left side of the
- tunnel, at three feet from the ground.
- I was stirred up with excitement. I hardly dared guess what the
- hunter was about to do. But I could not but understand, and applaud
- and cheer him on, when I saw him lay hold of the pickaxe to make an
- attack upon the rock.
- "We are saved!" I cried.
- "Yes," cried my uncle, almost frantic with excitement. "Hans is
- right. Capital fellow! Who but he would have thought of it?"
- Yes; who but he? Such an expedient, however simple, would never have
- entered into our minds. True, it seemed most hazardous to strike a
- blow of the hammer in this part of the earth's structure. Suppose
- some displacement should occur and crush us all! Suppose the torrent,
- bursting through, should drown us in a sudden flood! There was
- nothing vain in these fancies. But still no fears of falling rocks or
- rushing floods could stay us now; and our thirst was so intense that,
- to satisfy it, we would have dared the waves of the north Atlantic.
- Hans set about the task which my uncle and I together could not have
- accomplished. If our impatience had armed our hands with power, we
- should have shattered the rock into a thousand fragments. Not so
- Hans. Full of self possession, he calmly wore his way through the
- rock with a steady succession of light and skilful strokes, working
- through an aperture six inches wide at the outside. I could hear a
- louder noise of flowing waters, and I fancied I could feel the
- delicious fluid refreshing my parched lips.
- The pick had soon penetrated two feet into the granite partition, and
- our man had worked for above an hour. I was in an agony of
- impatience. My uncle wanted to employ stronger measures, and I had
- some difficulty in dissuading him; still he had just taken a pickaxe
- in his hand, when a sudden hissing was heard, and a jet of water
- spurted out with violence against the opposite wall.
- Hans, almost thrown off his feet by the violence of the shock,
- uttered a cry of grief and disappointment, of which I soon under-.
- stood the cause, when plunging my hands into the spouting torrent, I
- withdrew them in haste, for the water was scalding hot.
- "The water is at the boiling point," I cried.
- "Well, never mind, let it cool," my uncle replied.
- The tunnel was filling with steam, whilst a stream was forming, which
- by degrees wandered away into subterranean windings, and soon we had
- the satisfaction of swallowing our first draught.
- Could anything be more delicious than the sensation that our burning
- intolerable thirst was passing away, and leaving us to enjoy comfort
- and pleasure? But where was this water from? No matter. It was water;
- and though still warm, it brought life back to the dying. I kept
- drinking without stopping, and almost without tasting.
- At last after a most delightful time of reviving energy, I cried,
- "Why, this is a chalybeate spring!"
- "Nothing could be better for the digestion," said my uncle. "It is
- highly impregnated with iron. It will be as good for us as going to
- the Spa, or to T�plitz."
- "Well, it is delicious!"
- "Of course it is, water should be, found six miles underground. It
- has an inky flavour, which is not at all unpleasant. What a capital
- source of strength Hans has found for us here. We will call it after
- his name."
- "Agreed," I cried.
- And Hansbach it was from that moment.
- Hans was none the prouder. After a moderate draught, he went quietly
- into a corner to rest.
- "Now," I said, "we must not lose this water."
- "What is the use of troubling ourselves?" my uncle, replied. "I fancy
- it will never fail."
- "Never mind, we cannot be sure; let us fill the water bottle and our
- flasks, and then stop up the opening."
- My advice was followed so far as getting in a supply; but the
- stopping up of the hole was not so easy to accomplish. It was in vain
- that we took up fragments of granite, and stuffed them in with tow,
- we only scalded our hands without succeeding. The pressure was too
- great, and our efforts were fruitless.
- "It is quite plain," said I, "that the higher body of this water is
- at a considerable elevation. The force of the jet shows that."
- "No doubt," answered my uncle. "If this column of water is 32,000
- feet high--that is, from the surface of the earth, it is equal to
- the weight of a thousand atmospheres. But I have got an idea."
- "Well?"
- "Why should we trouble ourselves to stop the stream from coming out
- at all?"
- "Because--" Well, I could not assign a reason.
- "When our flasks are empty, where shall we fill them again? Can we
- tell that?"
- No; there was no certainty.
- "Well, let us allow the water to run on. It will flow down, and will
- both guide and refresh us."
- "That is well planned," I cried. "With this stream for our guide,
- there is no reason why we should not succeed in our undertaking."
- "Ah, my boy! you agree with me now," cried the Professor, laughing.
- "I agree with you most heartily."
- "Well, let us rest awhile; and then we will start again."
- I was forgetting that it was night. The chronometer soon informed me
- of that fact; and in a very short time, refreshed and thankful, we
- all three fell into a sound sleep.
- CHAPTER XXIV.
- WELL SAID, OLD MOLE! CANST THOU WORK I' THE GROUND SO FAST?
- By the next day we had forgotten all our sufferings. At first, I was
- wondering that I was no longer thirsty, and I was for asking for the
- reason. The answer came in the murmuring of the stream at my feet.
- We breakfasted, and drank of this excellent chalybeate water. I felt
- wonderfully stronger, and quite decided upon pushing on. Why should
- not so firmly convinced a man as my uncle, furnished with so
- industrious a guide as Hans, and accompanied by so determined a
- nephew as myself, go on to final success? Such were the magnificent
- plans which struggled for mastery within me. If it had been proposed
- to me to return to the summit of Sn�fell, I should have indignantly
- declined.
- Most fortunately, all we had to do was to descend.
- "Let us start!" I cried, awakening by my shouts the echoes of the
- vaulted hollows of the earth.
- On Thursday, at 8 a.m., we started afresh. The granite tunnel winding
- from side to side, earned us past unexpected turns, and seemed almost
- to form a labyrinth; but, on the whole, its direction seemed to be
- south-easterly. My uncle never ceased to consult his compass, to keep
- account of the ground gone over.
- The gallery dipped down a very little way from the horizontal,
- scarcely more than two inches in a fathom, and the stream ran gently
- murmuring at our feet. I compared it to a friendly genius guiding us
- underground, and caressed with my hand the soft naiad, whose
- comforting voice accompanied our steps. With my reviving spirits
- these mythological notions seemed to come unbidden.
- As for my uncle, he was beginning to storm against the horizontal
- road. He loved nothing better than a vertical path; but this way
- seemed indefinitely prolonged, and instead of sliding along the
- hypothenuse as we were now doing, he would willingly have dropped
- down the terrestrial radius. But there was no help for it, and as
- long as we were approaching the centre at all we felt that we must
- not complain.
- From time to time, a steeper path appeared; our naiad then began to
- tumble before us with a hoarser murmur, and we went down with her to
- a greater depth.
- On the whole, that day and the next we made considerable way
- horizontally, very little vertically.
- On Friday evening, the 10th of July, according to our calculations,
- we were thirty leagues south-east of Rejkiavik, and at a depth of two
- leagues and a half.
- At our feet there now opened a frightful abyss. My uncle, however,
- was not to be daunted, and he clapped his hands at the steepness of
- the descent.
- "This will take us a long way," he cried, "and without much
- difficulty; for the projections in the rock form quite a staircase."
- The ropes were so fastened by Hans as to guard against accident, and
- the descent commenced. I can hardly call it perilous, for I was
- beginning to be familiar with this kind of exercise.
- This well, or abyss, was a narrow cleft in the mass of the granite,
- called by geologists a 'fault,' and caused by the unequal cooling of
- the globe of the earth. If it had at one time been a passage for
- eruptive matter thrown out by Sn�fell, I still could not understand
- why no trace was left of its passage. We kept going down a kind of
- winding staircase, which seemed almost to have been made by the hand
- of man.
- Every quarter of an hour we were obliged to halt, to take a little
- necessary repose and restore the action of our limbs. We then sat
- down upon a fragment of rock, and we talked as we ate and drank from
- the stream.
- Of course, down this fault the Hansbach fell in a cascade, and lost
- some of its volume; but there was enough and to spare to slake our
- thirst. Besides, when the incline became more gentle, it would of
- course resume its peaceable course. At this moment it reminded me of
- my worthy uncle, in his frequent fits of impatience and anger, while
- below it ran with the calmness of the Icelandic hunter.
- On the 6th and 7th of July we kept following the spiral curves of
- this singular well, penetrating in actual distance no more than two
- leagues; but being carried to a depth of five leagues below the level
- of the sea. But on the 8th, about noon, the fault took, towards the
- south-east, a much gentler slope, one of about forty-five degrees.
- Then the road became monotonously easy. It could not be otherwise,
- for there was no landscape to vary the stages of our journey.
- On Wednesday, the 15th, we were seven leagues underground, and had
- travelled fifty leagues away from Sn�fell. Although we were tired,
- our health was perfect, and the medicine chest had not yet had
- occasion to be opened.
- My uncle noted every hour the indications of the compass, the
- chronometer, the aneroid, and the thermometer the very same which he
- has published in his scientific report of our journey. It was
- therefore not difficult to know exactly our whereabouts. When he told
- me that we had gone fifty leagues horizontally, I could not repress
- an exclamation of astonishment, at the thought that we had now long
- left Iceland behind us.
- "What is the matter?" he cried.
- "I was reflecting that if your calculations are correct we are no
- longer under Iceland."
- "Do you think so?"
- "I am not mistaken," I said, and examining the map, I added, "We have
- passed Cape Portland, and those fifty leagues bring us under the wide
- expanse of ocean."
- "Under the sea," my uncle repeated, rubbing his hands with delight.
- "Can it be?" I said. "Is the ocean spread above our heads?"
- "Of course, Axel. What can be more natural? At Newcastle are there
- not coal mines extending far under the sea?"
- It was all very well for the Professor to call this so simple, but I
- could not feel quite easy at the thought that the boundless ocean was
- rolling over my head. And yet it really mattered very little whether
- it was the plains and mountains that covered our heads, or the
- Atlantic waves, as long as we were arched over by solid granite. And,
- besides, I was getting used to this idea; for the tunnel, now running
- straight, now winding as capriciously in its inclines as in its
- turnings, but constantly preserving its south-easterly direction, and
- always running deeper, was gradually carrying us to very great depths
- indeed.
- Four days later, Saturday, the 18th of July, in the evening, we
- arrived at a kind of vast grotto; and here my uncle paid Hans his
- weekly wages, and it was settled that the next day, Sunday, should be
- a day of rest.
- CHAPTER XXV.
- DE PROFUNDIS
- I therefore awoke next day relieved from the preoccupation of an
- immediate start. Although we were in the very deepest of known
- depths, there was something not unpleasant about it. And, besides, we
- were beginning to get accustomed to this troglodyte [1] life. I no
- longer thought of sun, moon, and stars, trees, houses, and towns, nor
- of any of those terrestrial superfluities which are necessaries of
- men who live upon the earth's surface. Being fossils, we looked upon
- all those things as mere jokes.
- The grotto was an immense apartment. Along its granite floor ran our
- faithful stream. At this distance from its spring the water was
- scarcely tepid, and we drank of it with pleasure.
- After breakfast the Professor gave a few hours to the arrangement of
- his daily notes.
- "First," said he, "I will make a calculation to ascertain our exact
- position. I hope, after our return, to draw a map of our journey,
- which will be in reality a vertical section of the globe, containing
- the track of our expedition."
- "That will be curious, uncle; but are your observations sufficiently
- accurate to enable you to do this correctly?"
- "Yes; I have everywhere observed the angles and the inclines. I am
- sure there is no error. Let us see where we are now. Take your
- compass, and note the direction."
- I looked, and replied carefully:
- [1] tpwgln, a hole; dnw, to creep into. The name of an Ethiopian
- tribe who lived in caves and holes. ??????, a hole, and ???, to creep
- into.
- "South-east by east."
- "Well," answered the Professor, after a rapid calculation, "I infer
- that we have gone eighty-five leagues since we started."
- "Therefore we are under mid-Atlantic?"
- "To be sure we are."
- "And perhaps at this very moment there is a storm above, and ships
- over our heads are being rudely tossed by the tempest."
- "Quite probable."
- "And whales are lashing the roof of our prison with their tails?"
- "It may be, Axel, but they won't shake us here. But let us go back to
- our calculation. Here we are eighty-five leagues south-east of
- Sn�fell, and I reckon that we are at a depth of sixteen leagues."
- "Sixteen leagues?" I cried.
- "No doubt."
- "Why, this is the very limit assigned by science to the thickness of
- the crust of the earth."
- "I don't deny it."
- "And here, according to the law of increasing temperature, there
- ought to be a heat of 2,732� Fahr.!"
- "So there should, my lad."
- "And all this solid granite ought to be running in fusion."
- "You see that it is not so, and that, as so often happens, facts come
- to overthrow theories."
- "I am obliged to agree; but, after all, it is surprising."
- "What does the thermometer say?"
- "Twenty-seven, six tenths (82� Fahr.)."
- "Therefore the savants are wrong by 2,705�, and the proportional
- increase is a mistake. Therefore Humphry Davy was right, and I am not
- wrong in following him. What do you say now?"
- "Nothing."
- In truth, I had a good deal to say. I gave way in no respect to
- Davy's theory. I still held to the central heat, although I did not
- feel its effects. I preferred to admit in truth, that this chimney of
- an extinct volcano, lined with lavas, which are non-conductors of
- heat, did not suffer the heat to pass through its walls.
- But without stopping to look up new arguments I simply took up our
- situation such as it was.
- "Well, admitting all your calculations to be quite correct, you must
- allow me to draw one rigid result therefrom."
- "What is it. Speak freely."
- "At the latitude of Iceland, where we now are, the radius of the
- earth, the distance from the centre to the surface is about 1,583
- leagues; let us say in round numbers 1,600 leagues, or 4,800 miles.
- Out of 1,600 leagues we have gone twelve!"
- "So you say."
- "And these twelve at a cost of 85 leagues diagonally?"
- "Exactly so."
- "In twenty days?"
- "Yes."
- "Now, sixteen leagues are the hundredth part of the earth's radius.
- At this rate we shall be two thousand days, or nearly five years and
- a half, in getting to the centre."
- No answer was vouchsafed to this rational conclusion. "Without
- reckoning, too, that if a vertical depth of sixteen leagues can be
- attained only by a diagonal descent of eighty-four, it follows that
- we must go eight thousand miles in a south-easterly direction; so
- that we shall emerge from some point in the earth's circumference
- instead of getting to the centre!"
- "Confusion to all your figures, and all your hypotheses besides,"
- shouted my uncle in a sudden rage. "What is the basis of them all?
- How do you know that this passage does not run straight to our
- destination? Besides, there is a precedent. What one man has done,
- another may do."
- "I hope so; but, still, I may be permitted--"
- "You shall have my leave to hold your tongue, Axel, but not to talk
- in that irrational way."
- I could see the awful Professor bursting through my uncle's skin, and
- I took timely warning.
- "Now look at your aneroid. What does that say?"
- "It says we are under considerable pressure."
- "Very good; so you see that by going gradually down, and getting
- accustomed to the density of the atmosphere, we don't suffer at all."
- "Nothing, except a little pain in the ears."
- "That's nothing, and you may get rid of even that by quick breathing
- whenever you feel the pain."
- "Exactly so," I said, determined not to say a word that might cross
- my uncle's prejudices. "There is even positive pleasure in living in
- this dense atmosphere. Have you observed how intense sound is down
- here?"
- "No doubt it is. A deaf man would soon learn to hear perfectly."
- "But won't this density augment?"
- "Yes; according to a rather obscure law. It is well known that the
- weight of bodies diminishes as fast as we descend. You know that it
- is at the surface of the globe that weight is most sensibly felt, and
- that at the centre there is no weight at all."
- "I am aware of that; but, tell me, will not air at last acquire the
- density of water?"
- "Of course, under a pressure of seven hundred and ten atmospheres."
- "And how, lower down still?"
- "Lower down the density will still increase."
- "But how shall we go down then."
- "Why, we must fill our pockets with stones."
- "Well, indeed, my worthy uncle, you are never at a loss for an
- answer."
- I dared venture no farther into the region of probabilities, for I
- might presently have stumbled upon an impossibility, which would have
- brought the Professor on the scene when he was not wanted.
- Still, it was evident that the air, under a pressure which might
- reach that of thousands of atmospheres, would at last reach the solid
- state, and then, even if our bodies could resist the strain, we
- should be stopped, and no reasonings would be able to get us on any
- farther.
- But I did not advance this argument. My uncle would have met it with
- his inevitable Saknussemm, a precedent which possessed no weight with
- me; for even if the journey of the learned Icelander were really
- attested, there was one very simple answer, that in the sixteenth
- century there was neither barometer or aneroid and therefore
- Saknussemm could not tell how far he had gone.
- But I kept this objection to myself, and waited the course of events.
- The rest of the day was passed in calculations and in conversations.
- I remained a steadfast adherent of the opinions of Professor
- Liedenbrock, and I envied the stolid indifference of Hans, who,
- without going into causes and effects, went on with his eyes shut
- wherever his destiny guided him.
- CHAPTER XXVI.
- THE WORST PERIL OF ALL
- It must be confessed that hitherto things had not gone on so badly,
- and that I had small reason to complain. If our difficulties became
- no worse, we might hope to reach our end. And to what a height of
- scientific glory we should then attain! I had become quite a
- Liedenbrock in my reasonings; seriously I had. But would this state
- of things last in the strange place we had come to? Perhaps it might.
- For several days steeper inclines, some even frightfully near to the
- perpendicular, brought us deeper and deeper into the mass of the
- interior of the earth. Some days we advanced nearer to the centre by
- a league and a half, or nearly two leagues. These were perilous
- descents, in which the skill and marvellous coolness of Hans were
- invaluable to us. That unimpassioned Icelander devoted himself with
- incomprehensible deliberation; and, thanks to him, we crossed many a
- dangerous spot which we should never have cleared alone.
- But his habit of silence gained upon him day by day, and was
- infecting us. External objects produce decided effects upon the
- brain. A man shut up between four walls soon loses the power to
- associate words and ideas together. How many prisoners in solitary
- confinement become idiots, if not mad, for want of exercise for the
- thinking faculty!
- During the fortnight following our last conversation, no incident
- occurred worthy of being recorded. But I have good reason for
- remembering one very serious event which took place at this time, and
- of which I could scarcely now forget the smallest details.
- By the 7th of August our successive descents had brought us to a
- depth of thirty leagues; that is, that for a space of thirty leagues
- there were over our heads solid beds of rock, ocean, continents, and
- towns. We must have been two hundred leagues from Iceland.
- On that day the tunnel went down a gentle slope. I was ahead of the
- others. My uncle was carrying one of Ruhmkorff's lamps and I the
- other. I was examining the beds of granite.
- Suddenly turning round I observed that I was alone.
- Well, well, I thought; I have been going too fast, or Hans and my
- uncle have stopped on the way. Come, this won't do; I must join them.
- Fortunately there is not much of an ascent.
- I retraced my steps. I walked for a quarter of an hour. I gazed into
- the darkness. I shouted. No reply: my voice was lost in the midst of
- the cavernous echoes which alone replied to my call.
- I began to feel uneasy. A shudder ran through me.
- "Calmly!" I said aloud to myself, "I am sure to find my companions
- again. There are not two roads. I was too far ahead. I will return!"
- For half an hour I climbed up. I listened for a call, and in that
- dense atmosphere a voice could reach very far. But there was a dreary
- silence in all that long gallery. I stopped. I could not believe that
- I was lost. I was only bewildered for a time, not lost. I was sure I
- should find my way again.
- "Come," I repeated, "since there is but one road, and they are on it,
- I must find them again. I have but to ascend still. Unless, indeed,
- missing me, and supposing me to be behind, they too should have gone
- back. But even in this case I have only to make the greater haste. I
- shall find them, I am sure."
- I repeated these words in the fainter tones of a half-convinced man.
- Besides, to associate even such simple ideas with words, and reason
- with them, was a work of time.
- A doubt then seized upon me. Was I indeed in advance when we became
- separated? Yes, to be sure I was. Hans was after me, preceding my
- uncle. He had even stopped for a while to strap his baggage better
- over his shoulders. I could remember this little incident. It was at
- that very moment that I must have gone on.
- Besides, I thought, have not I a guarantee that I shall not lose my
- way, a clue in the labyrinth, that cannot be broken, my faithful
- stream? I have but to trace it back, and I must come upon them.
- This conclusion revived my spirits, and I resolved to resume my march
- without loss of time.
- How I then blessed my uncle's foresight in preventing the hunter from
- stopping up the hole in the granite. This beneficent spring, after
- having satisfied our thirst on the road, would now be my guide among
- the windings of the terrestrial crust.
- Before starting afresh I thought a wash would do me good. I stooped
- to bathe my face in the Hansbach.
- To my stupefaction and utter dismay my feet trod only--the rough dry
- granite. The stream was no longer at my feet.
- CHAPTER XXVII.
- LOST IN THE BOWELS OF THE EARTH
- To describe my despair would be impossible. No words could tell it. I
- was buried alive, with the prospect before me of dying of hunger and
- thirst.
- Mechanically I swept the ground with my hands. How dry and hard the
- rock seemed to me!
- But how had I left the course of the stream? For it was a terrible
- fact that it no longer ran at my side. Then I understood the reason
- of that fearful, silence, when for the last time I listened to hear
- if any sound from my companions could reach my ears. At the moment
- when I left the right road I had not noticed the absence of the
- stream. It is evident that at that moment a deviation had presented
- itself before me, whilst the Hansbach, following the caprice of
- another incline, had gone with my companions away into unknown depths.
- How was I to return? There was not a trace of their footsteps or of
- my own, for the foot left no mark upon the granite floor. I racked my
- brain for a solution of this impracticable problem. One word
- described my position. Lost!
- Lost at an immeasurable depth! Thirty leagues of rock seemed to weigh
- upon my shoulders with a dreadful pressure. I felt crushed.
- I tried to carry back my ideas to things on the surface of the earth.
- I could scarcely succeed. Hamburg, the house in the K�nigstrasse, my
- poor Gr�uben, all that busy world underneath which I was wandering
- about, was passing in rapid confusion before my terrified memory. I
- could revive with vivid reality all the incidents of our voyage,
- Iceland, M. Fridrikssen, Sn�fell. I said to myself that if, in such a
- position as I was now in, I was fool enough to cling to one glimpse
- of hope, it would be madness, and that the best thing I could do was
- to despair.
- What human power could restore me to the light of the sun by rending
- asunder the huge arches of rock which united over my head,
- buttressing each other with impregnable strength? Who could place my
- feet on the right path, and bring me back to my company?
- "Oh, my uncle!" burst from my lips in the tone of despair.
- It was my only word of reproach, for I knew how much he must be
- suffering in seeking me, wherever he might be.
- When I saw myself thus far removed from all earthly help I had
- recourse to heavenly succour. The remembrance of my childhood, the
- recollection of my mother, whom I had only known in my tender early
- years, came back to me, and I knelt in prayer imploring for the
- Divine help of which I was so little worthy.
- This return of trust in God's providence allayed the turbulence of my
- fears, and I was enabled to concentrate upon my situation all the
- force of my intelligence.
- I had three days' provisions with me and my flask was full. But I
- could not remain alone for long. Should I go up or down?
- Up, of course; up continually.
- I must thus arrive at the point where I had left the stream, that
- fatal turn in the road. With the stream at my feet, I might hope to
- regain the summit of Sn�fell.
- Why had I not thought of that sooner? Here was evidently a chance of
- safety. The most pressing duty was to find out again the course of
- the Hansbach. I rose, and leaning upon my iron-pointed stick I
- ascended the gallery. The slope was rather steep. I walked on without
- hope but without indecision, like a man who has made up his mind.
- For half an hour I met with no obstacle. I tried to recognise my way
- by the form of the tunnel, by the projections of certain rocks, by
- the disposition of the fractures. But no particular sign appeared,
- and I soon saw that this gallery could not bring me back to the
- turning point. It came to an abrupt end. I struck against an
- impenetrable wall, and fell down upon the rock.
- Unspeakable despair then seized upon me. I lay overwhelmed, aghast!
- My last hope was shattered against this granite wall.
- Lost in this labyrinth, whose windings crossed each other in all
- directions, it was no use to think of flight any longer. Here I must
- die the most dreadful of deaths. And, strange to say, the thought
- came across me that when some day my petrified remains should be
- found thirty leagues below the surface in the bowels of the earth,
- the discovery might lead to grave scientific discussions.
- I tried to speak aloud, but hoarse sounds alone passed my dry lips. I
- panted for breath.
- In the midst of my agony a new terror laid hold of me. In falling my
- lamp had got wrong. I could not set it right, and its light was
- paling and would soon disappear altogether.
- I gazed painfully upon the luminous current growing weaker and weaker
- in the wire coil. A dim procession of moving shadows seemed slowly
- unfolding down the darkening walls. I scarcely dared to shut my eyes
- for one moment, for fear of losing the least glimmer of this precious
- light. Every instant it seemed about to vanish and the dense
- blackness to come rolling in palpably upon me.
- One last trembling glimmer shot feebly up. I watched it in trembling
- and anxiety; I drank it in as if I could preserve it, concentrating
- upon it the full power of my eyes, as upon the very last sensation of
- light which they were ever to experience, and the next moment I lay
- in the heavy gloom of deep, thick, unfathomable darkness.
- A terrible cry of anguish burst from me. Upon earth, in the midst of
- the darkest night, light never abdicates its functions altogether. It
- is still subtle and diffusive, but whatever little there may be, the
- eye still catches that little. Here there was not an atom; the total
- darkness made me totally blind.
- Then I began to lose my head. I arose with my arms stretched out
- before me, attempting painfully to feel my way. I began to run
- wildly, hurrying through the inextricable maze, still descending,
- still running through the substance of the earth's thick crust, a
- struggling denizen of geological 'faults,' crying, shouting, yelling,
- soon bruised by contact with the jagged rock, falling and rising
- again bleeding, trying to drink the blood which covered my face, and
- even waiting for some rock to shatter my skull against.
- I shall never know whither my mad career took me. After the lapse of
- some hours, no doubt exhausted, I fell like a lifeless lump at the
- foot of the wall, and lost all consciousness.
- CHAPTER XXVIII.
- THE RESCUE IN THE WHISPERING GALLERY
- When I returned to partial life my face was wet with tears. How long
- that state of insensibility had lasted I cannot say. I had no means
- now of taking account of time. Never was solitude equal to this,
- never had any living being been so utterly forsaken.
- After my fall I had lost a good deal of blood. I felt it flowing over
- me. Ah! how happy I should have been could I have died, and if death
- were not yet to be gone through. I would think no longer. I drove
- away every idea, and, conquered by my grief, I rolled myself to the
- foot of the opposite wall.
- Already I was feeling the approach of another faint, and was hoping
- for complete annihilation, when a loud noise reached me. It was like
- the distant rumble of continuous thunder, and I could hear its
- sounding undulations rolling far away into the remote recesses of the
- abyss.
- Whence could this noise proceed? It must be from some phenomenon
- proceeding in the great depths amidst which I lay helpless. Was it an
- explosion of gas? Was it the fall of some mighty pillar of the globe?
- I listened still. I wanted to know if the noise would be repeated. A
- quarter of an hour passed away. Silence reigned in this gallery. I
- could not hear even the beating of my heart.
- Suddenly my ear, resting by chance against the wall, caught, or
- seemed to catch, certain vague, indescribable, distant, articulate
- sounds, as of words.
- "This is a delusion," I thought.
- But it was not. Listening more attentively, I heard in reality a
- murmuring of voices. But my weakness prevented me from understanding
- what the voices said. Yet it was language, I was sure of it.
- For a moment I feared the words might be my own, brought back by the
- echo. Perhaps I had been crying out unknown to myself. I closed my
- lips firmly, and laid my ear against the wall again.
- "Yes, truly, some one is speaking; those are words!"
- Even a few feet from the wall I could hear distinctly. I succeeded in
- catching uncertain, strange, undistinguishable words. They came as if
- pronounced in low murmured whispers. The word '_forlorad_' was
- several times repeated in a tone of sympathy and sorrow.
- "Help!" I cried with all my might. "Help!"
- I listened, I watched in the darkness for an answer, a cry, a mere
- breath of sound, but nothing came. Some minutes passed. A whole world
- of ideas had opened in my mind. I thought that my weakened voice
- could never penetrate to my companions.
- "It is they," I repeated. "What other men can be thirty leagues under
- ground?"
- I again began to listen. Passing my ear over the wall from one place
- to another, I found the point where the voices seemed to be best
- heard. The word '_forlorad_' again returned; then the rolling of
- thunder which had roused me from my lethargy.
- "No," I said, "no; it is not through such a mass that a voice can be
- heard. I am surrounded by granite walls, and the loudest explosion
- could never be heard here! This noise comes along the gallery. There
- must be here some remarkable exercise of acoustic laws!"
- I listened again, and this time, yes this time, I did distinctly hear
- my name pronounced across the wide interval.
- It was my uncle's own voice! He was talking to the guide. And
- '_forlorad_' is a Danish word.
- Then I understood it all. To make myself heard, I must speak along
- this wall, which would conduct the sound of my voice just as wire
- conducts electricity.
- But there was no time to lose. If my companions moved but a few steps
- away, the acoustic phenomenon would cease. I therefore approached the
- wall, and pronounced these words as clearly as possible:
- "Uncle Liedenbrock!"
- I waited with the deepest anxiety. Sound does not travel with great
- velocity. Even increased density air has no effect upon its rate of
- travelling; it merely augments its intensity. Seconds, which seemed
- ages, passed away, and at last these words reached me:
- "Axel! Axel! is it you?"
- . . . .
- "Yes, yes," I replied.
- . . . .
- "My boy, where are you?"
- . . . .
- "Lost, in the deepest darkness."
- . . . .
- "Where is your lamp?"
- . . . .
- "It is out."
- . . . .
- "And the stream?"
- . . . .
- "Disappeared."
- . . . .
- "Axel, Axel, take courage!"
- . . . .
- "Wait! I am exhausted! I can't answer. Speak to me!"
- . . . .
- "Courage," resumed my uncle. "Don't speak. Listen to me. We have
- looked for you up the gallery and down the gallery. Could not find
- you. I wept for you, my poor boy. At last, supposing you were still
- on the Hansbach, we fired our guns. Our voices are audible to each
- other, but our hands cannot touch. But don't despair, Axel! It is a
- great thing that we can hear each other."
- . . . .
- During this time I had been reflecting. A vague hope was returning to
- my heart. There was one thing I must know to begin with. I placed my
- lips close to the wall, saying:
- "My uncle!"
- . . . .
- "My boy!" came to me after a few seconds.
- . . . .
- "We must know how far we are apart."
- . . . .
- "That is easy."
- . . . .
- "You have your chronometer?"
- . . .
- "Yes."
- . . . .
- "Well, take it. Pronounce my name, noting exactly the second when you
- speak. I will repeat it as soon as it shall come to me, and you will
- observe the exact moment when you get my answer."
- "Yes; and half the time between my call and your answer will exactly
- indicate that which my voice will take in coming to you."
- . . . .
- "Just so, my uncle."
- . . . .
- "Are you ready?"
- . . . .
- "Yes."
- . . . . . .
- "Now, attention. I am going to call your name."
- . . . .
- I put my ear to the wall, and as soon as the name 'Axel' came I
- immediately replied "Axel," then waited.
- . . . .
- "Forty seconds," said my uncle. "Forty seconds between the two words;
- so the sound takes twenty seconds in coming. Now, at the rate of
- 1,120 feet in a second, this is 22,400 feet, or four miles and a
- quarter, nearly."
- . . . .
- "Four miles and a quarter!" I murmured.
- . . . .
- "It will soon be over, Axel."
- . . . .
- "Must I go up or down?"
- . . . .
- "Down--for this reason: We are in a vast chamber, with endless
- galleries. Yours must lead into it, for it seems as if all the clefts
- and fractures of the globe radiated round this vast cavern. So get
- up, and begin walking. Walk on, drag yourself along, if necessary
- slide down the steep places, and at the end you will find us ready to
- receive you. Now begin moving."
- . . . .
- These words cheered me up.
- "Good bye, uncle." I cried. "I am going. There will be no more voices
- heard when once I have started. So good bye!"
- . . . .
- "Good bye, Axel, _au revoir!_"
- . . . .
- These were the last words I heard.
- This wonderful underground conversation, carried on with a distance
- of four miles and a quarter between us, concluded with these words of
- hope. I thanked God from my heart, for it was He who had conducted me
- through those vast solitudes to the point where, alone of all others
- perhaps, the voices of my companions could have reached me.
- This acoustic effect is easily explained on scientific grounds. It
- arose from the concave form of the gallery and the conducting power
- of the rock. There are many examples of this propagation of sounds
- which remain unheard in the intermediate space. I remember that a
- similar phenomenon has been observed in many places; amongst others
- on the internal surface of the gallery of the dome of St. Paul's in
- London, and especially in the midst of the curious caverns among the
- quarries near Syracuse, the most wonderful of which is called
- Dionysius' Ear.
- These remembrances came into my mind, and I clearly saw that since my
- uncle's voice really reached me, there could be no obstacle between
- us. Following the direction by which the sound came, of course I
- should arrive in his presence, if my strength did not fail me.
- I therefore rose; I rather dragged myself than walked. The slope was
- rapid, and I slid down.
- Soon the swiftness of the descent increased horribly, and threatened
- to become a fall. I no longer had the strength to stop myself.
- Suddenly there was no ground under me. I felt myself revolving in
- air, striking and rebounding against the craggy projections of a
- vertical gallery, quite a well; my head struck against a sharp corner
- of the rock, and I became unconscious.
- CHAPTER XXIX.
- THALATTA! THALATTA!
- When I came to myself, I was stretched in half darkness, covered with
- thick coats and blankets. My uncle was watching over me, to discover
- the least sign of life. At my first sigh he took my hand; when I
- opened my eyes he uttered a cry of joy.
- "He lives! he lives!" he cried.
- "Yes, I am still alive," I answered feebly.
- "My dear nephew," said my uncle, pressing me to his breast, "you are
- saved."
- I was deeply touched with the tenderness of his manner as he uttered
- these words, and still more with the care with which he watched over
- me. But such trials were wanted to bring out the Professor's tenderer
- qualities.
- At this moment Hans came, he saw my hand in my uncle's, and I may
- safely say that there was joy in his countenance.
- "_God dag,_" said he.
- "How do you do, Hans? How are you? And now, uncle, tell me where we
- are at the present moment?"
- "To-morrow, Axel, to-morrow. Now you are too faint and weak. I have
- bandaged your head with compresses which must not be disturbed. Sleep
- now, and to-morrow I will tell you all."
- "But do tell me what time it is, and what day."
- "It is Sunday, the 8th of August, and it is ten at night. You must
- ask me no more questions until the 10th."
- In truth I was very weak, and my eyes involuntarily closed. I wanted
- a good night's rest; and I therefore went off to sleep, with the
- knowledge that I had been four long days alone in the heart of the
- earth.
- Next morning, on awakening, I looked round me. My couch, made up of
- all our travelling gear, was in a charming grotto, adorned with
- splendid stalactites, and the soil of which was a fine sand. It was
- half light. There was no torch, no lamp, yet certain mysterious
- glimpses of light came from without through a narrow opening in the
- grotto. I heard too a vague and indistinct noise, something like the
- murmuring of waves breaking upon a shingly shore, and at times I
- seemed to hear the whistling of wind.
- I wondered whether I was awake, whether I was dreaming, whether my brain,
- crazed by my fall, was not affected by imaginary noises. Yet neither
- eyes, nor ears could be so utterly deceived.
- It is a ray of daylight, I thought, sliding in through this cleft in
- the rock! That is indeed the murmuring of waves! That is the rustling
- noise of wind. Am I quite mistaken, or have we returned to the
- surface of the earth? Has my uncle given up the expedition, or is it
- happily terminated?
- I was asking myself these unanswerable questions when the Professor
- entered.
- "Good morning, Axel," he cried cheerily. "I feel sure you are better."
- "Yes, I am indeed," said I, sitting up on my couch.
- "You can hardly fail to be better, for you have slept quietly. Hans
- and I watched you by turns, and we have noticed you were evidently
- recovering."
- "Indeed, I do feel a great deal better, and I will give you a proof
- of that presently if you will let me have my breakfast."
- "You shall eat, lad. The fever has left you. Hans rubbed your wounds
- with some ointment or other of which the Icelanders keep the secret,
- and they have healed marvellously. Our hunter is a splendid fellow!"
- Whilst he went on talking, my uncle prepared a few provisions, which
- I devoured eagerly, notwithstanding his advice to the contrary. All
- the while I was overwhelming him with questions which he answered
- readily.
- I then learnt that my providential fall had brought me exactly to the
- extremity of an almost perpendicular shaft; and as I had landed in
- the midst of an accompanying torrent of stones, the least of which
- would have been enough to crush me, the conclusion was that a loose
- portion of the rock had come down with me. This frightful conveyance
- had thus carried me into the arms of my uncle, where I fell bruised,
- bleeding, and insensible.
- "Truly it is wonderful that you have not been killed a hundred times
- over. But, for the love of God, don't let us ever separate again, or
- we many never see each other more."
- "Not separate! Is the journey not over, then?" I opened a pair of
- astonished eyes, which immediately called for the question:
- "What is the matter, Axel?"
- "I have a question to ask you. You say that I am safe and sound?"
- "No doubt you are."
- "And all my limbs unbroken?"
- "Certainly."
- "And my head?"
- "Your head, except for a few bruises, is all right; and it is on your
- shoulders, where it ought to be."
- "Well, I am afraid my brain is affected."
- "Your mind affected!"
- "Yes, I fear so. Are we again on the surface of the globe?"
- "No, certainly not."
- "Then I must be mad; for don't I see the light of day, and don't I
- hear the wind blowing, and the sea breaking on the shore?"
- "Ah! is that all?"
- "Do tell me all about it."
- "I can't explain the inexplicable, but you will soon see and
- understand that geology has not yet learnt all it has to learn."
- "Then let us go," I answered quickly.
- "No, Axel; the open air might be bad for you."
- "Open air?"
- "Yes; the wind is rather strong. You must not expose yourself."
- "But I assure you I am perfectly well."
- "A little patience, my nephew. A relapse might get us into trouble,
- and we have no time to lose, for the voyage may be a long one."
- "The voyage!"
- "Yes, rest to-day, and to-morrow we will set sail."
- "Set sail!"--and I almost leaped up.
- What did it all mean? Had we a river, a lake, a sea to depend upon?
- Was there a ship at our disposal in some underground harbour?
- My curiosity was highly excited, my uncle vainly tried to restrain
- me. When he saw that my impatience was doing me harm, he yielded.
- I dressed in haste. For greater safety I wrapped myself in a blanket,
- and came out of the grotto.
- CHAPTER XXX.
- A NEW MARE INTERNUM
- At first I could hardly see anything. My eyes, unaccustomed to the
- light, quickly closed. When I was able to reopen them, I stood more
- stupefied even than surprised.
- "The sea!" I cried.
- "Yes," my uncle replied, "the Liedenbrock Sea; and I don't suppose
- any other discoverer will ever dispute my claim to name it after
- myself as its first discoverer."
- A vast sheet of water, the commencement of a lake or an ocean, spread
- far away beyond the range of the eye, reminding me forcibly of that
- open sea which drew from Xenophon's ten thousand Greeks, after their
- long retreat, the simultaneous cry, "Thalatta! thalatta!" the sea!
- the sea! The deeply indented shore was lined with a breadth of fine
- shining sand, softly lapped by the waves, and strewn with the small
- shells which had been inhabited by the first of created beings. The
- waves broke on this shore with the hollow echoing murmur peculiar to
- vast inclosed spaces. A light foam flew over the waves before the
- breath of a moderate breeze, and some of the spray fell upon my face.
- On this slightly inclining shore, about a hundred fathoms from the
- limit of the waves, came down the foot of a huge wall of vast cliffs,
- which rose majestically to an enormous height. Some of these,
- dividing the beach with their sharp spurs, formed capes and
- promontories, worn away by the ceaseless action of the surf. Farther
- on the eye discerned their massive outline sharply defined against
- the hazy distant horizon.
- It was quite an ocean, with the irregular shores of earth, but desert
- and frightfully wild in appearance.
- If my eyes were able to range afar over this great sea, it was
- because a peculiar light brought to view every detail of it. It was
- not the light of the sun, with his dazzling shafts of brightness and
- the splendour of his rays; nor was it the pale and uncertain shimmer
- of the moonbeams, the dim reflection of a nobler body of light. No;
- the illuminating power of this light, its trembling diffusiveness,
- its bright, clear whiteness, and its low temperature, showed that it
- must be of electric origin. It was like an aurora borealis, a
- continuous cosmical phenomenon, filling a cavern of sufficient extent
- to contain an ocean.
- The vault that spanned the space above, the sky, if it could be
- called so, seemed composed of vast plains of cloud, shifting and
- variable vapours, which by their condensation must at certain times
- fall in torrents of rain. I should have thought that under so
- powerful a pressure of the atmosphere there could be no evaporation;
- and yet, under a law unknown to me, there were broad tracts of vapour
- suspended in the air. But then 'the weather was fine.' The play of
- the electric light produced singular effects upon the upper strata of
- cloud. Deep shadows reposed upon their lower wreaths; and often,
- between two separated fields of cloud, there glided down a ray of
- unspeakable lustre. But it was not solar light, and there was no
- heat. The general effect was sad, supremely melancholy. Instead of
- the shining firmament, spangled with its innumerable stars, shining
- singly or in clusters, I felt that all these subdued and shaded
- lights were ribbed in by vast walls of granite, which seemed to
- overpower me with their weight, and that all this space, great as it
- was, would not be enough for the march of the humblest of satellites.
- Then I remembered the theory of an English captain, who likened the
- earth to a vast hollow sphere, in the interior of which the air
- became luminous because of the vast pressure that weighed upon it;
- while two stars, Pluto and Proserpine, rolled within upon the circuit
- of their mysterious orbits.
- We were in reality shut up inside an immeasurable excavation. Its
- width could not be estimated, since the shore ran widening as far as
- eye could reach, nor could its length, for the dim horizon bounded
- the new. As for its height, it must have been several leagues. Where
- this vault rested upon its granite base no eye could tell; but there
- was a cloud hanging far above, the height of which we estimated at
- 12,000 feet, a greater height than that of any terrestrial vapour,
- and no doubt due to the great density of the air.
- The word cavern does not convey any idea of this immense space; words
- of human tongue are inadequate to describe the discoveries of him who
- ventures into the deep abysses of earth.
- Besides I could not tell upon what geological theory to account for
- the existence of such an excavation. Had the cooling of the globe
- produced it? I knew of celebrated caverns from the descriptions of
- travellers, but had never heard of any of such dimensions as this.
- If the grotto of Guachara, in Colombia, visited by Humboldt, had not
- given up the whole of the secret of its depth to the philosopher, who
- investigated it to the depth of 2,500 feet, it probably did not
- extend much farther. The immense mammoth cave in Kentucky is of
- gigantic proportions, since its vaulted roof rises five hundred feet
- [1] above the level of an unfathomable lake and travellers have
- explored its ramifications to the extent of forty miles. But what
- were these cavities compared to that in which I stood with wonder and
- admiration, with its sky of luminous vapours, its bursts of electric
- light, and a vast sea filling its bed? My imagination fell powerless
- before such immensity.
- I gazed upon these wonders in silence. Words failed me to express my
- feelings. I felt as if I was in some distant planet Uranus or
- Neptune--and in the presence of phenomena of which my terrestrial
- experience gave me no cognisance. For such novel sensations, new words
- were wanted; and my imagination failed to supply them. I gazed, I
- thought, I admired, with a stupefaction mingled with a certain amount of
- fear.
- The unforeseen nature of this spectacle brought back the colour to my
- cheeks. I was under a new course of treatment with the aid of
- astonishment, and my convalescence was promoted by this novel system
- of therapeutics; besides, the dense and breezy air invigorated me,
- supplying more oxygen to my lungs.
- It will be easily conceived that after an imprisonment of forty seven
- days in a narrow gallery it was the height of physical enjoyment to
- breathe a moist air impregnated with saline particles.
- [1] One hundred and twenty. (Trans.)
- I was delighted to leave my dark grotto. My uncle, already familiar
- with these wonders, had ceased to feel surprise.
- "You feel strong enough to walk a little way now?" he asked.
- "Yes, certainly; and nothing could be more delightful."
- "Well, take my arm, Axel, and let us follow the windings of the
- shore."
- I eagerly accepted, and we began to coast along this new sea. On the
- left huge pyramids of rock, piled one upon another, produced a
- prodigious titanic effect. Down their sides flowed numberless
- waterfalls, which went on their way in brawling but pellucid streams.
- A few light vapours, leaping from rock to rock, denoted the place of
- hot springs; and streams flowed softly down to the common basin,
- gliding down the gentle slopes with a softer murmur.
- Amongst these streams I recognised our faithful travelling companion,
- the Hansbach, coming to lose its little volume quietly in the mighty
- sea, just as if it had done nothing else since the beginning of the
- world.
- "We shall see it no more," I said, with a sigh.
- "What matters," replied the philosopher, "whether this or another
- serves to guide us?"
- I thought him rather ungrateful.
- But at that moment my attention was drawn to an unexpected sight. At
- a distance of five hundred paces, at the turn of a high promontory,
- appeared a high, tufted, dense forest. It was composed of trees of
- moderate height, formed like umbrellas, with exact geometrical
- outlines. The currents of wind seemed to have had no effect upon
- their shape, and in the midst of the windy blasts they stood unmoved
- and firm, just like a clump of petrified cedars.
- I hastened forward. I could not give any name to these singular
- creations. Were they some of the two hundred thousand species of
- vegetables known hitherto, and did they claim a place of their own in
- the lacustrine flora? No; when we arrived under their shade my
- surprise turned into admiration. There stood before me productions of
- earth, but of gigantic stature, which my uncle immediately named.
- "It is only a forest of mushrooms," said he.
- And he was right. Imagine the large development attained by these
- plants, which prefer a warm, moist climate. I knew that the
- _Lycopodon giganteum_ attains, according to Bulliard, a circumference
- of eight or nine feet; but here were pale mushrooms, thirty to forty
- feet high, and crowned with a cap of equal diameter. There they stood
- in thousands. No light could penetrate between their huge cones, and
- complete darkness reigned beneath those giants; they formed
- settlements of domes placed in close array like the round, thatched
- roofs of a central African city.
- Yet I wanted to penetrate farther underneath, though a chill fell
- upon me as soon as I came under those cellular vaults. For half an
- hour we wandered from side to side in the damp shades, and it was a
- comfortable and pleasant change to arrive once more upon the sea
- shore.
- But the subterranean vegetation was not confined to these fungi.
- Farther on rose groups of tall trees of colourless foliage and easy
- to recognise. They were lowly shrubs of earth, here attaining
- gigantic size; lycopodiums, a hundred feet high; the huge sigillaria,
- found in our coal mines; tree ferns, as tall as our fir-trees in
- northern latitudes; lepidodendra, with cylindrical forked stems,
- terminated by long leaves, and bristling with rough hairs like those
- of the cactus.
- "Wonderful, magnificent, splendid!" cried my uncle. "Here is the
- entire flora of the second period of the world--the transition
- period. These, humble garden plants with us, were tall trees in the
- early ages. Look, Axel, and admire it all. Never had botanist such a
- feast as this!"
- "You are right, my uncle. Providence seems to have preserved in this
- immense conservatory the antediluvian plants which the wisdom of
- philosophers has so sagaciously put together again."
- "It is a conservatory, Axel; but is it not also a menagerie?"
- "Surely not a menagerie!"
- "Yes; no doubt of it. Look at that dust under your feet; see the
- bones scattered on the ground."
- "So there are!" I cried; "bones of extinct animals."
- I had rushed upon these remains, formed of indestructible phosphates
- of lime, and without hesitation I named these monstrous bones, which
- lay scattered about like decayed trunks of trees.
- "Here is the lower jaw of a mastodon," [1] I said. "These are the
- molar teeth of the deinotherium; this femur must have belonged to the
- greatest of those beasts, the megatherium. It certainly is a
- menagerie, for these remains were not brought here by a deluge. The
- animals to which they belonged roamed on the shores of this
- subterranean sea, under the shade of those arborescent trees. Here
- are entire skeletons. And yet I cannot understand the appearance of
- these quadrupeds in a granite cavern."
- [1] These animals belonged to a late geological period, the Pliocene,
- just before the glacial epoch, and therefore could have no connection
- with the carboniferous vegetation. (Trans.)
- "Why?"
- "Because animal life existed upon the earth only in the secondary
- period, when a sediment of soil had been deposited by the rivers, and
- taken the place of the incandescent rocks of the primitive period."
- "Well, Axel, there is a very simple answer to your objection that
- this soil is alluvial."
- "What! at such a depth below the surface of the earth?"
- "No doubt; and there is a geological explanation of the fact. At a
- certain period the earth consisted only of an elastic crust or bark,
- alternately acted on by forces from above or below, according to the
- laws of attraction and gravitation. Probably there were subsidences
- of the outer crust, when a portion of the sedimentary deposits was
- carried down sudden openings."
- "That may be," I replied; "but if there have been creatures now
- extinct in these underground regions, why may not some of those
- monsters be now roaming through these gloomy forests, or hidden
- behind the steep crags?"
- And as this unpleasant notion got hold of me, I surveyed with anxious
- scrutiny the open spaces before me; but no living creature appeared
- upon the barren strand.
- I felt rather tired, and went to sit down at the end of a promontory,
- at the foot of which the waves came and beat themselves into spray.
- Thence my eye could sweep every part of the bay; within its extremity
- a little harbour was formed between the pyramidal cliffs, where the
- still waters slept untouched by the boisterous winds. A brig and two
- or three schooners might have moored within it in safety. I almost
- fancied I should presently see some ship issue from it, full sail,
- and take to the open sea under the southern breeze.
- But this illusion lasted a very short time. We were the only living
- creatures in this subterranean world. When the wind lulled, a deeper
- silence than that of the deserts fell upon the arid, naked rocks, and
- weighed upon the surface of the ocean. I then desired to pierce the
- distant haze, and to rend asunder the mysterious curtain that hung
- across the horizon. Anxious queries arose to my lips. Where did that
- sea terminate? Where did it lead to? Should we ever know anything
- about its opposite shores?
- My uncle made no doubt about it at all; I both desired and feared.
- After spending an hour in the contemplation of this marvellous
- spectacle, we returned to the shore to regain the grotto, and I fell
- asleep in the midst of the strangest thoughts.
- CHAPTER XXXI.
- PREPARATIONS FOR A VOYAGE OF DISCOVERY
- The next morning I awoke feeling perfectly well. I thought a bathe
- would do me good, and I went to plunge for a few minutes into the
- waters of this mediterranean sea, for assuredly it better deserved
- this name than any other sea.
- I came back to breakfast with a good appetite. Hans was a good
- caterer for our little household; he had water and fire at his
- disposal, so that he was able to vary our bill of fare now and then.
- For dessert he gave us a few cups of coffee, and never was coffee so
- delicious.
- "Now," said my uncle, "now is the time for high tide, and we must not
- lose the opportunity to study this phenomenon."
- "What! the tide!" I cried. "Can the influence of the sun and moon be
- felt down here?"
- "Why not? Are not all bodies subject throughout their mass to the
- power of universal attraction? This mass of water cannot escape the
- general law. And in spite of the heavy atmospheric pressure on the
- surface, you will see it rise like the Atlantic itself."
- At the same moment we reached the sand on the shore, and the waves
- were by slow degrees encroaching on the shore.
- "Here is the tide rising," I cried.
- "Yes, Axel; and judging by these ridges of foam, you may observe that
- the sea will rise about twelve feet."
- "This is wonderful," I said.
- "No; it is quite natural."
- "You may say so, uncle; but to me it is most extraordinary, and I can
- hardly believe my eyes. Who would ever have imagined, under this
- terrestrial crust, an ocean with ebbing and flowing tides, with winds
- and storms?"
- "Well," replied my uncle, "is there any scientific reason against it?"
- "No; I see none, as soon as the theory of central heat is given up."
- "So then, thus far," he answered, "the theory of Sir Humphry Davy is
- confirmed."
- "Evidently it is; and now there is no reason why there should not be
- seas and continents in the interior of the earth."
- "No doubt," said my uncle; "and inhabited too."
- "To be sure," said I; "and why should not these waters yield to us
- fishes of unknown species?"
- "At any rate," he replied, "we have not seen any yet."
- "Well, let us make some lines, and see if the bait will draw here as
- it does in sublunary regions."
- "We will try, Axel, for we must penetrate all secrets of these newly
- discovered regions."
- "But where are we, uncle? for I have not yet asked you that question,
- and your instruments must be able to furnish the answer."
- "Horizontally, three hundred and fifty leagues from Iceland."
- "So much as that?"
- "I am sure of not being a mile out of my reckoning."
- "And does the compass still show south-east?"
- "Yes; with a westerly deviation of nineteen degrees forty-five
- minutes, just as above ground. As for its dip, a curious fact is
- coming to light, which I have observed carefully: that the needle,
- instead of dipping towards the pole as in the northern hemisphere, on
- the contrary, rises from it."
- "Would you then conclude," I said, "that the magnetic pole is
- somewhere between the surface of the globe and the point where we
- are?"
- "Exactly so; and it is likely enough that if we were to reach the
- spot beneath the polar regions, about that seventy-first degree where
- Sir James Ross has discovered the magnetic pole to be situated, we
- should see the needle point straight up. Therefore that mysterious
- centre of attraction is at no great depth."
- I remarked: "It is so; and here is a fact which science has scarcely
- suspected."
- "Science, my lad, has been built upon many errors; but they are
- errors which it was good to fall into, for they led to the truth."
- "What depth have we now reached?"
- "We are thirty-five leagues below the surface."
- "So," I said, examining the map, "the Highlands of Scotland are over
- our heads, and the Grampians are raising their rugged summits above
- us."
- "Yes," answered the Professor laughing. "It is rather a heavy weight
- to bear, but a solid arch spans over our heads. The great Architect
- has built it of the best materials; and never could man have given it
- so wide a stretch. What are the finest arches of bridges and the
- arcades of cathedrals, compared with this far reaching vault, with a
- radius of three leagues, beneath which a wide and tempest-tossed
- ocean may flow at its ease?"
- "Oh, I am not afraid that it will fall down upon my head. But now
- what are your plans? Are you not thinking of returning to the surface
- now?"
- "Return! no, indeed! We will continue our journey, everything having
- gone on well so far."
- "But how are we to get down below this liquid surface?"
- "Oh, I am not going to dive head foremost. But if all oceans are
- properly speaking but lakes, since they are encompassed by land, of
- course this internal sea will be surrounded by a coast of granite,
- and on the opposite shores we shall find fresh passages opening."
- "How long do you suppose this sea to be?"
- "Thirty or forty leagues; so that we have no time to lose, and we
- shall set sail to-morrow."
- I looked about for a ship.
- "Set sail, shall we? But I should like to see my boat first."
- "It will not be a boat at all, but a good, well-made raft."
- "Why," I said, "a raft would be just as hard to make as a boat, and I
- don't see--"
- "I know you don't see; but you might hear if you would listen. Don't
- you hear the hammer at work? Hans is already busy at it."
- "What, has he already felled the trees?"
- "Oh, the trees were already down. Come, and you will see for
- yourself."
- After half an hour's walking, on the other side of the promontory
- which formed the little natural harbour, I perceived Hans at work. In
- a few more steps I was at his side. To my great surprise a
- half-finished raft was already lying on the sand, made of a peculiar
- kind of wood, and a great number of planks, straight and bent, and of
- frames, were covering the ground, enough almost for a little fleet.
- "Uncle, what wood is this?" I cried.
- "It is fir, pine, or birch, and other northern coniferae, mineralised
- by the action of the sea. It is called surturbrand, a variety of
- brown coal or lignite, found chiefly in Iceland."
- "But surely, then, like other fossil wood, it must be as hard as
- stone, and cannot float?"
- "Sometimes that may happen; some of these woods become true
- anthracites; but others, such as this, have only gone through the
- first stage of fossil transformation. Just look," added my uncle,
- throwing into the sea one of those precious waifs.
- The bit of wood, after disappearing, returned to the surface and
- oscillated to and fro with the waves.
- "Are you convinced?" said my uncle.
- "I am quite convinced, although it is incredible!"
- By next evening, thanks to the industry and skill of our guide, the
- raft was made. It was ten feet by five; the planks of surturbrand,
- braced strongly together with cords, presented an even surface, and
- when launched this improvised vessel floated easily upon the waves of
- the Liedenbrock Sea.
- CHAPTER XXXII.
- WONDERS OF THE DEEP
- On the 13th of August we awoke early. We were now to begin to adopt a
- mode of travelling both more expeditious and less fatiguing than
- hitherto.
- A mast was made of two poles spliced together, a yard was made of a
- third, a blanket borrowed from our coverings made a tolerable sail.
- There was no want of cordage for the rigging, and everything was well
- and firmly made.
- The provisions, the baggage, the instruments, the guns, and a good
- quantity of fresh water from the rocks around, all found their proper
- places on board; and at six the Professor gave the signal to embark.
- Hans had fitted up a rudder to steer his vessel. He took the tiller,
- and unmoored; the sail was set, and we were soon afloat. At the
- moment of leaving the harbour, my uncle, who was tenaciously fond of
- naming his new discoveries, wanted to give it a name, and proposed
- mine amongst others.
- "But I have a better to propose," I said: "Grauben. Let it be called
- Port Gr�uben; it will look very well upon the map."
- "Port Gr�uben let it be then."
- And so the cherished remembrance of my Virlandaise became associated
- with our adventurous expedition.
- The wind was from the north-west. We went with it at a high rate of
- speed. The dense atmosphere acted with great force and impelled us
- swiftly on.
- In an hour my uncle had been able to estimate our progress. At this
- rate, he said, we shall make thirty leagues in twenty-four hours, and
- we shall soon come in sight of the opposite shore.
- I made no answer, but went and sat forward. The northern shore was
- already beginning to dip under the horizon. The eastern and western
- strands spread wide as if to bid us farewell. Before our eyes lay far
- and wide a vast sea; shadows of great clouds swept heavily over its
- silver-grey surface; the glistening bluish rays of electric light,
- here and there reflected by the dancing drops of spray, shot out
- little sheaves of light from the track we left in our rear. Soon we
- entirely lost sight of land; no object was left for the eye to judge
- by, and but for the frothy track of the raft, I might have thought we
- were standing still.
- About twelve, immense shoals of seaweeds came in sight. I was aware
- of the great powers of vegetation that characterise these plants,
- which grow at a depth of twelve thousand feet, reproduce themselves
- under a pressure of four hundred atmospheres, and sometimes form
- barriers strong enough to impede the course of a ship. But never, I
- think, were such seaweeds as those which we saw floating in immense
- waving lines upon the sea of Liedenbrock.
- Our raft skirted the whole length of the fuci, three or four thousand
- feet long, undulating like vast serpents beyond the reach of sight; I
- found some amusement in tracing these endless waves, always thinking
- I should come to the end of them, and for hours my patience was vying
- with my surprise.
- What natural force could have produced such plants, and what must
- have been the appearance of the earth in the first ages of its
- formation, when, under the action of heat and moisture, the vegetable
- kingdom alone was developing on its surface?
- Evening came, and, as on the previous day, I perceived no change in
- the luminous condition of the air. It was a constant condition, the
- permanency of which might be relied upon.
- After supper I laid myself down at the foot of the mast, and fell
- asleep in the midst of fantastic reveries.
- Hans, keeping fast by the helm, let the raft run on, which, after
- all, needed no steering, the wind blowing directly aft.
- Since our departure from Port Gr�uben, Professor Liedenbrock had
- entrusted the log to my care; I was to register every observation,
- make entries of interesting phenomena, the direction of the wind, the
- rate of sailing, the way we made--in a word, every particular of our
- singular voyage.
- I shall therefore reproduce here these daily notes, written, so to
- speak, as the course of events directed, in order to furnish an exact
- narrative of our passage.
- _Friday, August 14_.--Wind steady, N.W. The raft makes rapid way in
- a direct line. Coast thirty leagues to leeward. Nothing in sight
- before us. Intensity of light the same. Weather fine; that is to say,
- that the clouds are flying high, are light, and bathed in a white
- atmosphere resembling silver in a state of fusion. Therm. 89� Fahr.
- At noon Hans prepared a hook at the end of a line. He baited it with
- a small piece of meat and flung it into the sea. For two hours
- nothing was caught. Are these waters, then, bare of inhabitants? No,
- there's a pull at the line. Hans draws it in and brings out a
- struggling fish.
- "A sturgeon," I cried; "a small sturgeon."
- The Professor eyes the creature attentively, and his opinion differs
- from mine.
- The head of this fish was flat, but rounded in front, and the
- anterior part of its body was plated with bony, angular scales; it
- had no teeth, its pectoral fins were large, and of tail there was
- none. The animal belonged to the same order as the sturgeon, but
- differed from that fish in many essential particulars. After a short
- examination my uncle pronounced his opinion.
- "This fish belongs to an extinct family, of which only fossil traces
- are found in the devonian formations."
- "What!" I cried. "Have we taken alive an inhabitant of the seas of
- primitive ages?"
- "Yes; and you will observe that these fossil fishes have no identity
- with any living species. To have in one's possession a living
- specimen is a happy event for a naturalist."
- "But to what family does it belong?"
- "It is of the order of ganoids, of the family of the cephalaspidae;
- and a species of pterichthys. But this one displays a peculiarity
- confined to all fishes that inhabit subterranean waters. It is blind,
- and not only blind, but actually has no eyes at all."
- I looked: nothing could be more certain. But supposing it might be a
- solitary case, we baited afresh, and threw out our line. Surely this
- ocean is well peopled with fish, for in another couple of hours we
- took a large quantity of pterichthydes, as well as of others
- belonging to the extinct family of the dipterides, but of which my
- uncle could not tell the species; none had organs of sight. This
- unhoped-for catch recruited our stock of provisions.
- Thus it is evident that this sea contains none but species known to
- us in their fossil state, in which fishes as well as reptiles are the
- less perfectly and completely organised the farther back their date
- of creation.
- Perhaps we may yet meet with some of those saurians which science has
- reconstructed out of a bit of bone or cartilage. I took up the
- telescope and scanned the whole horizon, and found it everywhere a
- desert sea. We are far away removed from the shores.
- I gaze upward in the air. Why should not some of the strange birds
- restored by the immortal Cuvier again flap their 'sail-broad vans' in
- this dense and heavy atmosphere? There are sufficient fish for their
- support. I survey the whole space that stretches overhead; it is as
- desert as the shore was.
- Still my imagination carried me away amongst the wonderful
- speculations of pal�ontology. Though awake I fell into a dream. I
- thought I could see floating on the surface of the waters enormous
- chelonia, pre-adamite tortoises, resembling floating islands. Over the
- dimly lighted strand there trod the huge mammals of the first ages of
- the world, the leptotherium (slender beast), found in the caverns of
- Brazil; the merycotherium (ruminating beast), found in the 'drift' of
- iceclad Siberia. Farther on, the pachydermatous lophiodon (crested
- toothed), a gigantic tapir, hides behind the rocks to dispute its
- prey with the anoplotherium (unarmed beast), a strange creature,
- which seemed a compound of horse, rhinoceros, camel, and
- hippopotamus. The colossal mastodon (nipple-toothed) twists and
- untwists his trunk, and brays and pounds with his huge tusks the
- fragments of rock that cover the shore; whilst the megatherium (huge
- beast), buttressed upon his enormous hinder paws, grubs in the soil,
- awaking the sonorous echoes of the granite rocks with his tremendous
- roarings. Higher up, the protopitheca--the first monkey that
- appeared on the globe--is climbing up the steep ascents. Higher yet,
- the pterodactyle (wing-fingered) darts in irregular zigzags to and
- fro in the heavy air. In the uppermost regions of the air immense
- birds, more powerful than the cassowary, and larger than the ostrich,
- spread their vast breadth of wings and strike with their heads the
- granite vault that bounds the sky.
- All this fossil world rises to life again in my vivid imagination. I
- return to the scriptural periods or ages of the world, conventionally
- called 'days,' long before the appearance of man, when the unfinished
- world was as yet unfitted for his support. Then my dream backed even
- farther still into the ages before the creation of living beings. The
- mammals disappear, then the birds vanish, then the reptiles of the
- secondary period, and finally the fish, the crustaceans, molluscs,
- and articulated beings. Then the zoophytes of the transition period
- also return to nothing. I am the only living thing in the world: all
- life is concentrated in my beating heart alone. There are no more
- seasons; climates are no more; the heat of the globe continually
- increases and neutralises that of the sun. Vegetation becomes
- accelerated. I glide like a shade amongst arborescent ferns, treading
- with unsteady feet the coloured marls and the particoloured clays; I
- lean for support against the trunks of immense conifers; I lie in the
- shade of sphenophylla (wedge-leaved), asterophylla (star-leaved), and
- lycopods, a hundred feet high.
- Ages seem no more than days! I am passed, against my will, in
- retrograde order, through the long series of terrestrial changes.
- Plants disappear; granite rocks soften; intense heat converts solid
- bodies into thick fluids; the waters again cover the face of the
- earth; they boil, they rise in whirling eddies of steam; white and
- ghastly mists wrap round the shifting forms of the earth, which by
- imperceptible degrees dissolves into a gaseous mass, glowing fiery
- red and white, as large and as shining as the sun.
- And I myself am floating with wild caprice in the midst of this
- nebulous mass of fourteen hundred thousand times the volume of the
- earth into which it will one day be condensed, and carried forward
- amongst the planetary bodies. My body is no longer firm and
- terrestrial; it is resolved into its constituent atoms, subtilised,
- volatilised. Sublimed into imponderable vapour, I mingle and am lost
- in the endless foods of those vast globular volumes of vaporous
- mists, which roll upon their flaming orbits through infinite space.
- But is it not a dream? Whither is it carrying me? My feverish hand
- has vainly attempted to describe upon paper its strange and wonderful
- details. I have forgotten everything that surrounds me. The
- Professor, the guide, the raft--are all gone out of my ken. An
- illusion has laid hold upon me.
- "What is the matter?" my uncle breaks in.
- My staring eyes are fixed vacantly upon him.
- "Take care, Axel, or you will fall overboard."
- At that moment I felt the sinewy hand of Hans seizing me vigorously.
- But for him, carried away by my dream, I should have thrown myself
- into the sea.
- "Is he mad?" cried the Professor.
- "What is it all about?" at last I cried, returning to myself.
- "Do you feel ill?" my uncle asked.
- "No; but I have had a strange hallucination; it is over now. Is all
- going on right?"
- "Yes, it is a fair wind and a fine sea; we are sailing rapidly along,
- and if I am not out in my reckoning, we shall soon land."
- At these words I rose and gazed round upon the horizon, still
- everywhere bounded by clouds alone.
- CHAPTER XXXIII.
- A BATTLE OF MONSTERS
- _Saturday, August 15_.--The sea unbroken all round. No land in
- sight. The horizon seems extremely distant.
- My head is still stupefied with the vivid reality of my dream.
- My uncle has had no dreams, but he is out of temper. He examines the
- horizon all round with his glass, and folds his arms with the air of
- an injured man.
- I remark that Professor Liedenbrock has a tendency to relapse into an
- impatient mood, and I make a note of it in my log. All my danger and
- sufferings were needed to strike a spark of human feeling out of
- him; but now that I am well his nature has resumed its sway. And yet,
- what cause was there for anger? Is not the voyage prospering as
- favourably as possible under the circumstances? Is not the raft
- spinning along with marvellous speed?
- "-You seem anxious, my uncle," I said, seeing him continually with
- his glass to his eye.
- "Anxious! No, not at all."
- "Impatient, then?"
- "One might be, with less reason than now."
- "Yet we are going very fast."
- "What does that signify? I am not complaining that the rate is slow,
- but that the sea is so wide."
- I then remembered that the Professor, before starting, had estimated
- the length of this underground sea at thirty leagues. Now we had made
- three times the distance, yet still the southern coast was not in
- sight.
- "We are not descending as we ought to be," the Professor declares.
- "We are losing time, and the fact is, I have not come all this way to
- take a little sail upon a pond on a raft."
- He called this sea a pond, and our long voyage, taking a little sail!
- "But," I remarked, "since we have followed the road that Saknussemm
- has shown us--"
- "That is just the question. Have we followed that road? Did
- Saknussemm meet this sheet of water? Did he cross it? Has not the
- stream that we followed led us altogether astray?"
- "At any rate we cannot feel sorry to have come so far. This prospect
- is magnificent, and--"
- "But I don't care for prospects. I came with an object, and I mean to
- attain it. Therefore don't talk to me about views and prospects."
- I take this as my answer, and I leave the Professor to bite his lips
- with impatience. At six in the evening Hans asks for his wages, and
- his three rix dollars are counted out to him.
- _Sunday, August 16. _--Nothing new. Weather unchanged. The wind
- freshens. On awaking, my first thought was to observe the intensity
- of the light. I was possessed with an apprehension lest the electric
- light should grow dim, or fail altogether. But there seemed no reason
- to fear. The shadow of the raft was clearly outlined upon the surface
- of the waves.
- Truly this sea is of infinite width. It must be as wide as the
- Mediterranean or the Atlantic--and why not?
- My uncle took soundings several times. He tied the heaviest of our
- pickaxes to a long rope which he let down two hundred fathoms. No
- bottom yet; and we had some difficulty in hauling up our plummet.
- But when the pick was shipped again, Hans pointed out on its surface
- deep prints as if it had been violently compressed between two hard
- bodies.
- I looked at the hunter.
- "_T�nder,_" said he.
- I could not understand him, and turned to my uncle who was entirely
- absorbed in his calculations. I had rather not disturb him while he
- is quiet. I return to the Icelander. He by a snapping motion of his
- jaws conveys his ideas to me.
- "Teeth!" I cried, considering the iron bar with more attention.
- Yes, indeed, those are the marks of teeth imprinted upon the metal!
- The jaws which they arm must be possessed of amazing strength. Is
- there some monster beneath us belonging to the extinct races, more
- voracious than the shark, more fearful in vastness than the whale? I
- could not take my eyes off this indented iron bar. Surely will my
- last night's dream be realised?
- These thoughts agitated me all day, and my imagination scarcely
- calmed down after several hours' sleep.
- _Monday, August 17.--_ I am trying to recall the peculiar instincts
- of the monsters of the pre-adamite world, who, coming next in
- succession after the molluscs, the crustaceans and le fishes,
- preceded the animals of mammalian race upon the earth. The world then
- belonged to reptiles. Those monsters held the mastery in the seas of
- the secondary period. They possessed a perfect organisation, gigantic
- proportions, prodigious strength. The saurians of our day, the
- alligators and the crocodiles, are but feeble reproductions of their
- forefathers of primitive ages.
- I shudder as I recall these monsters to my remembrance. No human eye
- has ever beheld them living. They burdened this earth a thousand ages
- before man appeared, but their fossil remains, found in the
- argillaceous limestone called by the English the lias, have enabled
- their colossal structure to be perfectly built up again and
- anatomically ascertained.
- I saw at the Hamburg museum the skeleton of one of these creatures
- thirty feet in length. Am I then fated--I, a denizen of earth--to
- be placed face to face with these representatives of long extinct
- families? No; surely it cannot be! Yet the deep marks of conical
- teeth upon the iron pick are certainly those of the crocodile.
- My eyes are fearfully bent upon the sea. I dread to see one of these
- monsters darting forth from its submarine caverns. I suppose
- Professor Liedenbrock was of my opinion too, and even shared my
- fears, for after having examined the pick, his eyes traversed the
- ocean from side to side. What a very bad notion that was of his, I
- thought to myself, to take soundings just here! He has disturbed some
- monstrous beast in its remote den, and if we are not attacked on our
- voyage--
- I look at our guns and see that they are all right. My uncle notices
- it, and looks on approvingly.
- Already widely disturbed regions on the surface of the water indicate
- some commotion below. The danger is approaching. We must be on the
- look out.
- _Tuesday, August 18. _--Evening came, or rather the time came when
- sleep weighs down the weary eyelids, for there is no night here, and
- the ceaseless light wearies the eyes with its persistency just as if
- we were sailing under an arctic sun. Hans was at the helm. During his
- watch I slept.
- Two hours afterwards a terrible shock awoke me. The raft was heaved
- up on a watery mountain and pitched down again, at a distance of
- twenty fathoms.
- "What is the matter?" shouted my uncle. "Have we struck land?"
- Hans pointed with his finger at a dark mass six hundred yards away,
- rising and falling alternately with heavy plunges. I looked and cried:
- "It is an enormous porpoise."
- "Yes," replied my uncle, "and there is a sea lizard of vast size."
- "And farther on a monstrous crocodile. Look at its vast jaws and its
- rows of teeth! It is diving down!"
- "There's a whale, a whale!" cried the Professor. "I can see its great
- fins. See how he is throwing out air and water through his blowers."
- And in fact two liquid columns were rising to a considerable height
- above the sea. We stood amazed, thunderstruck, at the presence of
- such a herd of marine monsters. They were of supernatural dimensions;
- the smallest of them would have crunched our raft, crew and all, at
- one snap of its huge jaws.
- Hans wants to tack to get away from this dangerous neighbourhood; but
- he sees on the other hand enemies not less terrible; a tortoise forty
- feet long, and a serpent of thirty, lifting its fearful head and
- gleaming eyes above the flood.
- Flight was out of the question now. The reptiles rose; they wheeled
- around our little raft with a rapidity greater than that of express
- trains. They described around us gradually narrowing circles. I took
- up my rifle. But what could a ball do against the scaly armour with
- which these enormous beasts were clad?
- We stood dumb with fear. They approach us close: on one side the
- crocodile, on the other the serpent. The remainder of the sea
- monsters have disappeared. I prepare to fire. Hans stops me by a
- gesture. The two monsters pass within a hundred and fifty yards of
- the raft, and hurl themselves the one upon the other, with a fury
- which prevents them from seeing us.
- At three hundred yards from us the battle was fought. We could
- distinctly observe the two monsters engaged in deadly conflict. But
- it now seems to me as if the other animals were taking part in the
- fray--the porpoise, the whale, the lizard, the tortoise. Every
- moment I seem to see one or other of them. I point them to the
- Icelander. He shakes his head negatively.
- "_Tva,_" says he.
- "What two? Does he mean that there are only two animals?"
- "He is right," said my uncle, whose glass has never left his eye.
- "Surely you must be mistaken," I cried.
- "No: the first of those monsters has a porpoise's snout, a lizard's
- head, a crocodile's teeth; and hence our mistake. It is the
- ichthyosaurus (the fish lizard), the most terrible of the ancient
- monsters of the deep."
- "And the other?"
- "The other is a plesiosaurus (almost lizard), a serpent, armoured
- with the carapace and the paddles of a turtle; he is the dreadful
- enemy of the other."
- Hans had spoken truly. Two monsters only were creating all this
- commotion; and before my eyes are two reptiles of the primitive
- world. I can distinguish the eye of the ichthyosaurus glowing like a
- red-hot coal, and as large as a man's head. Nature has endowed it
- with an optical apparatus of extreme power, and capable of resisting
- the pressure of the great volume of water in the depths it inhabits.
- It has been appropriately called the saurian whale, for it has both
- the swiftness and the rapid movements of this monster of our own day.
- This one is not less than a hundred feet long, and I can judge of its
- size when it sweeps over the waters the vertical coils of its tail.
- Its jaw is enormous, and according to naturalists it is armed with no
- less than one hundred and eighty-two teeth.
- The plesiosaurus, a serpent with a cylindrical body and a short tail,
- has four flappers or paddles to act like oars. Its body is entirely
- covered with a thick armour of scales, and its neck, as flexible as a
- swan's, rises thirty feet above the waves.
- Those huge creatures attacked each other with the greatest animosity.
- They heaved around them liquid mountains, which rolled even to our
- raft and rocked it perilously. Twenty times we were near capsizing.
- Hissings of prodigious force are heard. The two beasts are fast
- locked together; I cannot distinguish the one from the other. The
- probable rage of the conqueror inspires us with intense fear.
- One hour, two hours, pass away. The struggle continues with unabated
- ferocity. The combatants alternately approach and recede from our
- raft. We remain motionless, ready to fire. Suddenly the ichthyosaurus
- and the plesiosaurus disappear below, leaving a whirlpool eddying in
- the water. Several minutes pass by while the fight goes on under
- water.
- All at once an enormous head is darted up, the head of the
- plesiosaurus. The monster is wounded to death. I no longer see his
- scaly armour. Only his long neck shoots up, drops again, coils and
- uncoils, droops, lashes the waters like a gigantic whip, and writhes
- like a worm that you tread on. The water is splashed for a long way
- around. The spray almost blinds us. But soon the reptile's agony
- draws to an end; its movements become fainter, its contortions cease
- to be so violent, and the long serpentine form lies a lifeless log on
- the labouring deep.
- As for the ichthyosaurus--has he returned to his submarine cavern?
- or will he reappear on the surface of the sea?
- CHAPTER XXXIV.
- THE GREAT GEYSER
- _Wednesday, August 19_.--Fortunately the wind blows violently, and
- has enabled us to flee from the scene of the late terrible struggle.
- Hans keeps at his post at the helm. My uncle, whom the absorbing
- incidents of the combat had drawn away from his contemplations, began
- again to look impatiently around him.
- The voyage resumes its uniform tenor, which I don't care to break
- with a repetition of such events as yesterday's.
- Thursday, Aug. 20.--Wind N.N.E., unsteady and fitful. Temperature
- high. Rate three and a half leagues an hour.
- About noon a distant noise is heard. I note the fact without being
- able to explain it. It is a continuous roar.
- "In the distance," says the Professor, "there is a rock or islet,
- against which the sea is breaking."
- Hans climbs up the mast, but sees no breakers. The ocean' is smooth
- and unbroken to its farthest limit.
- Three hours pass away. The roarings seem to proceed from a very
- distant waterfall.
- I remark upon this to my uncle, who replies doubtfully: "Yes, I am
- convinced that I am right." Are we, then, speeding forward to some
- cataract which will cast us down an abyss? This method of getting on
- may please the Professor, because it is vertical; but for my part I
- prefer the more ordinary modes of horizontal progression.
- At any rate, some leagues to the windward there must be some noisy
- phenomenon, for now the roarings are heard with increasing loudness.
- Do they proceed from the sky or the ocean?
- I look up to the atmospheric vapours, and try to fathom their depths.
- The sky is calm and motionless. The clouds have reached the utmost
- limit of the lofty vault, and there lie still bathed in the bright
- glare of the electric light. It is not there that we must seek for
- the cause of this phenomenon. Then I examine the horizon, which is
- unbroken and clear of all mist. There is no change in its aspect. But
- if this noise arises from a fall, a cataract, if all this ocean flows
- away headlong into a lower basin yet, if that deafening roar is
- produced by a mass of falling water, the current must needs
- accelerate, and its increasing speed will give me the measure of the
- peril that threatens us. I consult the current: there is none. I
- throw an empty bottle into the sea: it lies still.
- About four Hans rises, lays hold of the mast, climbs to its top.
- Thence his eye sweeps a large area of sea, and it is fixed upon a
- point. His countenance exhibits no surprise, but his eye is immovably
- steady.
- "He sees something," says my uncle.
- "I believe he does."
- Hans comes down, then stretches his arm to the south, saying:
- "_Dere nere!_"
- "Down there?" repeated my uncle.
- Then, seizing his glass, he gazes attentively for a minute, which
- seems to me an age.
- "Yes, yes!" he cried. "I see a vast inverted cone rising from the
- surface."
- "Is it another sea beast?"
- "Perhaps it is."
- "Then let us steer farther westward, for we know something of the
- danger of coming across monsters of that sort."
- "Let us go straight on," replied my uncle.
- I appealed to Hans. He maintained his course inflexibly.
- Yet, if at our present distance from the animal, a distance of twelve
- leagues at the least, the column of water driven through its blowers
- may be distinctly seen, it must needs be of vast size. The commonest
- prudence would counsel immediate flight; but we did not come so far
- to be prudent.
- Imprudently, therefore, we pursue our way. The nearer we approach,
- the higher mounts the jet of water. What monster can possibly fill
- itself with such a quantity of water, and spurt it up so continuously?
- At eight in the evening we are not two leagues distant from it. Its
- body--dusky, enormous, hillocky--lies spread upon the sea like an
- islet. Is it illusion or fear? Its length seems to me a couple of
- thousand yards. What can be this cetacean, which neither Cuvier nor
- Blumenbach knew anything about? It lies motionless, as if asleep; the
- sea seems unable to move it in the least; it is the waves that
- undulate upon its sides. The column of water thrown up to a height of
- five hundred feet falls in rain with a deafening uproar. And here are
- we scudding like lunatics before the wind, to get near to a monster
- that a hundred whales a day would not satisfy!
- Terror seizes upon me. I refuse to go further. I will cut the
- halliards if necessary! I am in open mutiny against the Professor,
- who vouchsafes no answer.
- Suddenly Hans rises, and pointing with his finger at the menacing
- object, he says:
- "_Holm._"
- "An island!" cries my uncle.
- "That's not an island!" I cried sceptically.
- "It's nothing else," shouted the Professor, with a loud laugh.
- "But that column of water?"
- "_Geyser,_" said Hans.
- "No doubt it is a geyser, like those in Iceland."
- At first I protest against being so widely mistaken as to have taken
- an island for a marine monster. But the evidence is against me, and I
- have to confess my error. It is nothing worse than a natural
- phenomenon.
- As we approach nearer the dimensions of the liquid column become
- magnificent. The islet resembles, with a most deceiving likeness, an
- enormous cetacean, whose head dominates the waves at a height of
- twenty yards. The geyser, a word meaning 'fury,' rises majestically
- from its extremity. Deep and heavy explosions are heard from time to
- time, when the enormous jet, possessed with more furious violence,
- shakes its plumy crest, and springs with a bound till it reaches the
- lowest stratum of the clouds. It stands alone. No steam vents, no hot
- springs surround it, and all the volcanic power of the region is
- concentrated here. Sparks of electric fire mingle with the dazzling
- sheaf of lighted fluid, every drop of which refracts the prismatic
- colours.
- "Let us land," said the Professor.
- "But we must carefully avoid this waterspout, which would sink our
- raft in a moment."
- Hans, steering with his usual skill, brought us to the other
- extremity of the islet.
- I leaped up on the rock; my uncle lightly followed, while our hunter
- remained at his post, like a man too wise ever to be astonished.
- We walked upon granite mingled with siliceous tufa. The soil shivers
- and shakes under our feet, like the sides of an overheated boiler
- filled with steam struggling to get loose. We come in sight of a
- small central basin, out of which the geyser springs. I plunge a
- register thermometer into the boiling water. It marks an intense heat
- of 325�, which is far above the boiling point; therefore this water
- issues from an ardent furnace, which is not at all in harmony with
- Professor Liedenbrock's theories. I cannot help making the remark.
- "Well," he replied, "how does that make against my doctrine?"
- "Oh, nothing at all," I said, seeing that I was going in opposition
- to immovable obstinacy.
- Still I am constrained to confess that hitherto we have been
- wonderfully favoured, and that for some reason unknown to myself we
- have accomplished our journey under singularly favourable conditions
- of temperature. But it seems manifest to me that some day we shall
- reach a region where the central heat attains its highest limits, and
- goes beyond a point that can be registered by our thermometers.
- "That is what we shall see." So says the Professor, who, having named
- this volcanic islet after his nephew, gives the signal to embark
- again.
- For some minutes I am still contemplating the geyser. I notice that
- it throws up its column of water with variable force: sometimes
- sending it to a great height, then again to a lower, which I
- attribute to the variable pressure of the steam accumulated in its
- reservoir.
- At last we leave the island, rounding away past the low rocks on its
- southern shore. Hans has taken advantage of the halt to refit his
- rudder.
- But before going any farther I make a few observations, to calculate
- the distance we have gone over, and note them in my journal. We have
- crossed two hundred and seventy leagues of sea since leaving Port
- Gr�uben; and we are six hundred and twenty leagues from Iceland,
- under England. [1]
- [1] This distance carries the travellers as far as under the Pyrenees
- if the league measures three miles. (Trans.)
- CHAPTER XXXV.
- AN ELECTRIC STORM
- _Friday, August 21_.--On the morrow the magnificent geyser has
- disappeared. The wind has risen, and has rapidly carried us away from
- Axel Island. The roarings become lost in the distance.
- The weather--if we may use that term--will change before long. The
- atmosphere is charged with vapours, pervaded with the electricity
- generated by the evaporation of saline waters. The clouds are sinking
- lower, and assume an olive hue. The electric light can scarcely
- penetrate through the dense curtain which has dropped over the
- theatre on which the battle of the elements is about to be waged.
- I feel peculiar sensations, like many creatures on earth at the
- approach of violent atmospheric changes. The heavily voluted cumulus
- clouds lower gloomily and threateningly; they wear that implacable
- look which I have sometimes noticed at the outbreak of a great storm.
- The air is heavy; the sea is calm.
- In the distance the clouds resemble great bales of cotton, piled up
- in picturesque disorder. By degrees they dilate, and gain in huge
- size what they lose in number. Such is their ponderous weight that
- they cannot rise from the horizon; but, obeying an impulse from
- higher currents, their dense consistency slowly yields. The gloom
- upon them deepens; and they soon present to our view a ponderous mass
- of almost level surface. From time to time a fleecy tuft of mist,
- with yet some gleaming light left upon it, drops down upon the dense
- floor of grey, and loses itself in the opaque and impenetrable mass.
- The atmosphere is evidently charged and surcharged with electricity.
- My whole body is saturated; my hair bristles just as when you stand
- upon an insulated stool under the action of an electrical machine. It
- seems to me as if my companions, the moment they touched me, would
- receive a severe shock like that from an electric eel.
- At ten in the morning the symptoms of storm become aggravated. The
- wind never lulls but to acquire increased strength; the vast bank of
- heavy clouds is a huge reservoir of fearful windy gusts and rushing
- storms.
- I am loth to believe these atmospheric menaces, and yet I cannot help
- muttering:
- "Here's some very bad weather coming on."
- The Professor made no answer. His temper is awful, to judge from the
- working of his features, as he sees this vast length of ocean
- unrolling before him to an indefinite extent. He can only spare time
- to shrug his shoulders viciously.
- "There's a heavy storm coming on," I cried, pointing towards the
- horizon. "Those clouds seem as if they were going to crush the sea."
- A deep silence falls on all around. The lately roaring winds are
- hushed into a dead calm; nature seems to breathe no more, and to be
- sinking into the stillness of death. On the mast already I see the
- light play of a lambent St. Elmo's fire; the outstretched sail
- catches not a breath of wind, and hangs like a sheet of lead. The
- rudder stands motionless in a sluggish, waveless sea. But if we have
- now ceased to advance why do we yet leave that sail loose, which at
- the first shock of the tempest may capsize us in a moment?
- "Let us reef the sail and cut the mast down!" I cried. "That will be
- safest."
- "No, no! Never!" shouted my impetuous uncle. "Never! Let the wind
- catch us if it will! What I want is to get the least glimpse of rock
- or shore, even if our raft should be smashed into shivers!"
- The words were hardly out of his mouth when a sudden change took
- place in the southern sky. The piled-up vapours condense into water;
- and the air, put into violent action to supply the vacuum left by the
- condensation of the mists, rouses itself into a whirlwind. It rushes
- on from the farthest recesses of the vast cavern. The darkness
- deepens; scarcely can I jot down a few hurried notes. The helm makes
- a bound. My uncle falls full length; I creep close to him. He has
- laid a firm hold upon a rope, and appears to watch with grim
- satisfaction this awful display of elemental strife.
- Hans stirs not. His long hair blown by the pelting storm, and laid
- flat across his immovable countenance, makes him a strange figure;
- for the end of each lock of loose flowing hair is tipped with little
- luminous radiations. This frightful mask of electric sparks suggests
- to me, even in this dizzy excitement, a comparison with pre-adamite
- man, the contemporary of the ichthyosaurus and the megatherium. [1]
- [1] Rather of the mammoth and the mastodon. (Trans.)
- The mast yet holds firm. The sail stretches tight like a bubble ready
- to burst. The raft flies at a rate that I cannot reckon, but not so
- fast as the foaming clouds of spray which it dashes from side to side
- in its headlong speed.
- "The sail! the sail!" I cry, motioning to lower it.
- "No!" replies my uncle.
- "_Nej!_" repeats Hans, leisurely shaking his head.
- But now the rain forms a rushing cataract in front of that horizon
- toward which we are running with such maddening speed. But before it
- has reached us the rain cloud parts asunder, the sea boils, and the
- electric fires are brought into violent action by a mighty chemical
- power that descends from the higher regions. The most vivid flashes
- of lightning are mingled with the violent crash of continuous
- thunder. Ceaseless fiery arrows dart in and out amongst the flying
- thunder-clouds; the vaporous mass soon glows with incandescent heat;
- hailstones rattle fiercely down, and as they dash upon our iron tools
- they too emit gleams and flashes of lurid light. The heaving waves
- resemble fiery volcanic hills, each belching forth its own interior
- flames, and every crest is plumed with dancing fire. My eyes fail
- under the dazzling light, my ears are stunned with the incessant
- crash of thunder. I must be bound to the mast, which bows like a reed
- before the mighty strength of the storm.
- (Here my notes become vague and indistinct. I have only been able to
- find a few which I seem to have jotted down almost unconsciously. But
- their very brevity and their obscurity reveal the intensity of the
- excitement which dominated me, and describe the actual position even
- better than my memory could do.)
- Sunday, 23.--Where are we? Driven forward with a swiftness that
- cannot be measured.
- The night was fearful; no abatement of the storm. The din and uproar
- are incessant; our ears are bleeding; to exchange a word is
- impossible.
- The lightning flashes with intense brilliancy, and never seems to
- cease for a moment. Zigzag streams of bluish white fire dash down
- upon the sea and rebound, and then take an upward flight till they
- strike the granite vault that overarches our heads. Suppose that
- solid roof should crumble down upon our heads! Other flashes with
- incessant play cross their vivid fires, while others again roll
- themselves into balls of living fire which explode like bombshells,
- but the music of which scarcely-adds to the din of the battle strife
- that almost deprives us of our senses of hearing and sight; the limit
- of intense loudness has been passed within which the human ear can
- distinguish one sound from another. If all the powder magazines in
- the world were to explode at once, we should hear no more than we do
- now.
- From the under surface of the clouds there are continual emissions of
- lurid light; electric matter is in continual evolution from their
- component molecules; the gaseous elements of the air need to be
- slaked with moisture; for innumerable columns of water rush upwards
- into the air and fall back again in white foam.
- Whither are we flying? My uncle lies full length across the raft.
- The heat increases. I refer to the thermometer; it indicates . . .
- (the figure is obliterated).
- _Monday, August 24._--Will there be an end to it? Is the atmospheric
- condition, having once reached this density, to become final?
- We are prostrated and worn out with fatigue. But Hans is as usual.
- The raft bears on still to the south-east. We have made two hundred
- leagues since we left Axel Island.
- At noon the violence of the storm redoubles. We are obliged to secure
- as fast as possible every article that belongs to our cargo. Each of
- us is lashed to some part of the raft. The waves rise above our heads.
- For three days we have never been able to make each other hear a
- word. Our mouths open, our lips move, but not a word can be heard. We
- cannot even make ourselves heard by approaching our mouth close to
- the ear.
- My uncle has drawn nearer to me. He has uttered a few words. They
- seem to be 'We are lost'; but I am not sure.
- At last I write down the words: "Let us lower the sail."
- He nods his consent.
- Scarcely has he lifted his head again before a ball of fire has
- bounded over the waves and lighted on board our raft. Mast and sail
- flew up in an instant together, and I saw them carried up to
- prodigious height, resembling in appearance a pterodactyle, one of
- those strong birds of the infant world.
- We lay there, our blood running cold with unspeakable terror. The
- fireball, half of it white, half azure blue, and the size of a
- ten-inch shell, moved slowly about the raft, but revolving on its own
- axis with astonishing velocity, as if whipped round by the force of
- the whirlwind. Here it comes, there it glides, now it is up the
- ragged stump of the mast, thence it lightly leaps on the provision
- bag, descends with a light bound, and just skims the powder magazine.
- Horrible! we shall be blown up; but no, the dazzling disk of
- mysterious light nimbly leaps aside; it approaches Hans, who fixes
- his blue eye upon it steadily; it threatens the head of my uncle, who
- falls upon his knees with his head down to avoid it. And now my turn
- comes; pale and trembling under the blinding splendour and the
- melting heat, it drops at my feet, spinning silently round upon the
- deck; I try to move my foot away, but cannot.
- A suffocating smell of nitrogen fills the air, it enters the throat,
- it fills the lungs. We suffer stifling pains.
- Why am I unable to move my foot? Is it riveted to the planks? Alas!
- the fall upon our fated raft of this electric globe has magnetised
- every iron article on board. The instruments, the tools, our guns,
- are clashing and clanking violently in their collisions with each
- other; the nails of my boots cling tenaciously to a plate of iron let
- into the timbers, and I cannot draw my foot away from the spot. At
- last by a violent effort I release myself at the instant when the
- ball in its gyrations was about to seize upon it, and carry me off my
- feet ....
- Ah! what a flood of intense and dazzling light! the globe has burst,
- and we are deluged with tongues of fire!
- Then all the light disappears. I could just see my uncle at full
- length on the raft, and Hans still at his helm and spitting fire
- under the action of the electricity which has saturated him.
- But where are we going to? Where?
- * * * *
- _Tuesday, August 25._--I recover from a long swoon. The storm
- continues to roar and rage; the lightnings dash hither and thither,
- like broods of fiery serpents filling all the air. Are we still under
- the sea? Yes, we are borne at incalculable speed. We have been
- carried under England, under the channel, under France, perhaps under
- the whole of Europe.
- * * * *
- A fresh noise is heard! Surely it is the sea breaking upon the rocks!
- But then . . . .
- CHAPTER XXXVI.
- CALM PHILOSOPHIC DISCUSSIONS
- Here I end what I may call my log, happily saved from the wreck, and
- I resume my narrative as before.
- What happened when the raft was dashed upon the rocks is more than I
- can tell. I felt myself hurled into the waves; and if I escaped from
- death, and if my body was not torn over the sharp edges of the rocks,
- it was because the powerful arm of Hans came to my rescue.
- The brave Icelander carried me out of the reach of the waves, over a
- burning sand where I found myself by the side of my uncle.
- Then he returned to the rocks, against which the furious waves were
- beating, to save what he could. I was unable to speak. I was
- shattered with fatigue and excitement; I wanted a whole hour to
- recover even a little.
- But a deluge of rain was still falling, though with that violence
- which generally denotes the near cessation of a storm. A few
- overhanging rocks afforded us some shelter from the storm. Hans
- prepared some food, which I could not touch; and each of us,
- exhausted with three sleepless nights, fell into a broken and painful
- sleep.
- The next day the weather was splendid. The sky and the sea had sunk
- into sudden repose. Every trace of the awful storm had disappeared.
- The exhilarating voice of the Professor fell upon my ears as I awoke;
- he was ominously cheerful.
- "Well, my boy," he cried, "have you slept well?"
- Would not any one have thought that we were still in our cheerful
- little house on the K�nigstrasse and that I was only just coming down
- to breakfast, and that I was to be married to Gr�uben that day?
- Alas! if the tempest had but sent the raft a little more east, we
- should have passed under Germany, under my beloved town of Hamburg,
- under the very street where dwelt all that I loved most in the world.
- Then only forty leagues would have separated us! But they were forty
- leagues perpendicular of solid granite wall, and in reality we were a
- thousand leagues asunder!
- All these painful reflections rapidly crossed my mind before I could
- answer my uncle's question.
- "Well, now," he repeated, "won't you tell me how you have slept?"
- "Oh, very well," I said. "I am only a little knocked up, but I shall
- soon be better."
- "Oh," says my uncle, "that's nothing to signify. You are only a
- little bit tired."
- "But you, uncle, you seem in very good spirits this morning."
- "Delighted, my boy, delighted. We have got there."
- "To our journey's end?"
- "No; but we have got to the end of that endless sea. Now we shall go
- by land, and really begin to go down! down! down!"
- "But, my dear uncle, do let me ask you one question."
- "Of course, Axel."
- "How about returning?"
- "Returning? Why, you are talking about the return before the arrival."
- "No, I only want to know how that is to be managed."
- "In the simplest way possible. When we have reached the centre of the
- globe, either we shall find some new way to get back, or we shall
- come back like decent folks the way we came. I feel pleased at the
- thought that it is sure not to be shut against us."
- "But then we shall have to refit the raft."
- "Of course."
- "Then, as to provisions, have we enough to last?"
- "Yes; to be sure we have. Hans is a clever fellow, and I am sure he
- must have saved a large part of our cargo. But still let us go and
- make sure."
- We left this grotto which lay open to every wind. At the same time I
- cherished a trembling hope which was a fear as well. It seemed to me
- impossible that the terrible wreck of the raft should not have
- destroyed everything on board. On my arrival on the shore I found
- Hans surrounded by an assemblage of articles all arranged in good
- order. My uncle shook hands with him with a lively gratitude. This
- man, with almost superhuman devotion, had been at work all the while
- that we were asleep, and had saved the most precious of the articles
- at the risk of his life.
- Not that we had suffered no losses. For instance, our firearms; but
- we might do without them. Our stock of powder had remained uninjured
- after having risked blowing up during the storm.
- "Well," cried the Professor, "as we have no guns we cannot hunt,
- that's all."
- "Yes, but how about the instruments?"
- "Here is the aneroid, the most useful of all, and for which I would
- have given all the others. By means of it I can calculate the depth
- and know when we have reached the centre; without it we might very
- likely go beyond, and come out at the antipodes!"
- Such high spirits as these were rather too strong.
- "But where is the compass? I asked.
- "Here it is, upon this rock, in perfect condition, as well as the
- thermometers and the chronometer. The hunter is a splendid fellow."
- There was no denying it. We had all our instruments. As for tools and
- appliances, there they all lay on the ground--ladders, ropes, picks,
- spades, etc.
- Still there was the question of provisions to be settled, and I
- asked--"How are we off for provisions?"
- The boxes containing these were in a line upon the shore, in a
- perfect state of preservation; for the most part the sea had spared
- them, and what with biscuits, salt meat, spirits, and salt fish, we
- might reckon on four months' supply.
- "Four months!" cried the Professor. "We have time to go and to
- return; and with what is left I will give a grand dinner to my
- friends at the Johann�um."
- I ought by this time to have been quite accustomed to my uncle's
- ways; yet there was always something fresh about him to astonish me.
- "Now," said he, "we will replenish our supply of water with the rain
- which the storm has left in all these granite basins; therefore we
- shall have no reason to fear anything from thirst. As for the raft, I
- will recommend Hans to do his best to repair it, although I don't
- expect it will be of any further use to us."
- "How so?" I cried.
- "An idea of my own, my lad. I don't think we shall come out by the
- way that we went in."
- I stared at the Professor with a good deal of mistrust. I asked, was
- he not touched in the brain? And yet there was method in his madness.
- "And now let us go to breakfast," said he.
- I followed him to a headland, after he had given his instructions to
- the hunter. There preserved meat, biscuit, and tea made us an
- excellent meal, one of the best I ever remember. Hunger, the fresh
- air, the calm quiet weather, after the commotions we had gone
- through, all contributed to give me a good appetite.
- Whilst breakfasting I took the opportunity to put to my uncle the
- question where we were now.
- "That seems to me," I said, "rather difficult to make out."
- "Yes, it is difficult," he said, "to calculate exactly; perhaps even
- impossible, since during these three stormy days I have been unable
- to keep any account of the rate or direction of the raft; but still
- we may get an approximation."
- "The last observation," I remarked, "was made on the island, when the
- geyser was--"
- "You mean Axel Island. Don't decline the honour of having given your
- name to the first island ever discovered in the central parts of the
- globe."
- "Well," said I, "let it be Axel Island. Then we had cleared two
- hundred and seventy leagues of sea, and we were six hundred leagues
- from Iceland."
- "Very well," answered my uncle; "let us start from that point and
- count four days' storm, during which our rate cannot have been less
- than eighty leagues in the twenty-four hours."
- "That is right; and this would make three hundred leagues more."
- "Yes, and the Liedenbrock sea would be six hundred leagues from shore
- to shore. Surely, Axel, it may vie in size with the Mediterranean
- itself."
- "Especially," I replied, "if it happens that we have only crossed it
- in its narrowest part. And it is a curious circumstance," I added,
- "that if my computations are right, and we are nine hundred leagues
- from Rejkiavik, we have now the Mediterranean above our head."
- "That is a good long way, my friend. But whether we are under Turkey
- or the Atlantic depends very much upon the question in what direction
- we have been moving. Perhaps we have deviated."
- "No, I think not. Our course has been the same all along, and I
- believe this shore is south-east of Port Gr�uben."
- "Well," replied my uncle, "we may easily ascertain this by consulting
- the compass. Let us go and see what it says."
- The Professor moved towards the rock upon which Hans had laid down
- the instruments. He was gay and full of spirits; he rubbed his hands,
- he studied his attitudes. I followed him, curious to know if I was
- right in my estimate. As soon as we had arrived at the rock my uncle
- took the compass, laid it horizontally, and questioned the needle,
- which, after a few oscillations, presently assumed a fixed position.
- My uncle looked, and looked, and looked again. He rubbed his eyes,
- and then turned to me thunderstruck with some unexpected discovery.
- "What is the matter?" I asked.
- He motioned to me to look. An exclamation of astonishment burst from
- me. The north pole of the needle was turned to what we supposed to be
- the south. It pointed to the shore instead of to the open sea! I
- shook the box, examined it again, it was in perfect condition. In
- whatever position I placed the box the needle pertinaciously returned
- to this unexpected quarter. Therefore there seemed no reason to doubt
- that during the storm there had been a sudden change of wind
- unperceived by us, which had brought our raft back to the shore which
- we thought we had left so long a distance behind us.
- CHAPTER XXXVII.
- THE LIEDENBROCK MUSEUM OF GEOLOGY
- How shall I describe the strange series of passions which in
- succession shook the breast of Professor Liedenbrock? First
- stupefaction, then incredulity, lastly a downright burst of rage.
- Never had I seen the man so put out of countenance and so disturbed.
- The fatigues of our passage across, the dangers met, had all to be
- begun over again. We had gone backwards instead of forwards!
- But my uncle rapidly recovered himself.
- "Aha! will fate play tricks upon me? Will the elements lay plots
- against me? Shall fire, air, and water make a combined attack against
- me? Well, they shall know what a determined man can do. I will not
- yield. I will not stir a single foot backwards, and it will be seen
- whether man or nature is to have the upper hand!"
- Erect upon the rock, angry and threatening, Otto Liedenbrock was a
- rather grotesque fierce parody upon the fierce Achilles defying the
- lightning. But I thought it my duty to interpose and attempt to lay
- some restraint upon this unmeasured fanaticism.
- "Just listen to me," I said firmly. "Ambition must have a limit
- somewhere; we cannot perform impossibilities; we are not at all fit
- for another sea voyage; who would dream of undertaking a voyage of
- five hundred leagues upon a heap of rotten planks, with a blanket in
- rags for a sail, a stick for a mast, and fierce winds in our teeth?
- We cannot steer; we shall be buffeted by the tempests, and we should
- be fools and madmen to attempt to cross a second time."
- I was able to develop this series of unanswerable reasons for ten
- minutes without interruption; not that the Professor was paying any
- respectful attention to his nephew's arguments, but because he was
- deaf to all my eloquence.
- "To the raft!" he shouted.
- Such was his only reply. It was no use for me to entreat, supplicate,
- get angry, or do anything else in the way of opposition; it would
- only have been opposing a will harder than the granite rock.
- Hans was finishing the repairs of the raft. One would have thought
- that this strange being was guessing at my uncle's intentions. With a
- few more pieces of surturbrand he had refitted our vessel. A sail
- already hung from the new mast, and the wind was playing in its
- waving folds.
- The Professor said a few words to the guide, and immediately he put
- everything on board and arranged every necessary for our departure.
- The air was clear--and the north-west wind blew steadily.
- What could I do? Could I stand against the two? It was impossible? If
- Hans had but taken my side! But no, it was not to be. The Icelander
- seemed to have renounced all will of his own and made a vow to forget
- and deny himself. I could get nothing out of a servant so feudalised,
- as it were, to his master. My only course was to proceed.
- I was therefore going with as much resignation as I could find to
- resume my accustomed place on the raft, when my uncle laid his hand
- upon my shoulder.
- "We shall not sail until to-morrow," he said.
- I made a movement intended to express resignation.
- "I must neglect nothing," he said; "and since my fate has driven me
- on this part of the coast, I will not leave it until I have examined
- it."
- To understand what followed, it must be borne in mind that, through
- circumstances hereafter to be explained, we were not really where the
- Professor supposed we were. In fact we were not upon the north shore
- of the sea.
- "Now let us start upon fresh discoveries," I said.
- And leaving Hans to his work we started off together. The space
- between the water and the foot of the cliffs was considerable. It
- took half an hour to bring us to the wall of rock. We trampled under
- our feet numberless shells of all the forms and sizes which existed
- in the earliest ages of the world. I also saw immense carapaces more
- than fifteen feet in diameter. They had been the coverings of those
- gigantic glyptodons or armadilloes of the pleiocene period, of which
- the modern tortoise is but a miniature representative. [1] The soil
- was besides this scattered with stony fragments, boulders rounded by
- water action, and ridged up in successive lines. I was therefore led
- to the conclusion that at one time the sea must have covered the
- ground on which we were treading. On the loose and scattered rocks,
- now out of the reach of the highest tides, the waves had left
- manifest traces of their power to wear their way in the hardest stone.
- This might up to a certain point explain the existence of an ocean
- forty leagues beneath the surface of the globe. But in my opinion
- this liquid mass would be lost by degrees farther and farther within
- the interior of the earth, and it certainly had its origin in the
- waters of the ocean overhead, which had made their way hither through
- some fissure. Yet it must be believed that that fissure is now
- closed, and that all this cavern or immense reservoir was filled in a
- very short time. Perhaps even this water, subjected to the fierce
- action of central heat, had partly been resolved into vapour. This
- would explain the existence of those clouds suspended over our heads
- and the development of that electricity which raised such tempests
- within the bowels of the earth.
- This theory of the phenomena we had witnessed seemed satisfactory to
- me; for however great and stupendous the phenomena of nature, fixed
- physical laws will or may always explain them.
- We were therefore walking upon sedimentary soil, the deposits of the
- waters of former ages. The Professor was carefully examining every
- little fissure in the rocks. Wherever he saw a hole he always wanted
- to know the depth of it. To him this was important.
- We had traversed the shores of the Liedenbrock sea for a mile when we
- observed a sudden change in the appearance of the soil. It seemed
- upset, contorted, and convulsed by a violent upheaval of the lower
- strata. In many places depressions or elevations gave witness to some
- tremendous power effecting the dislocation of strata.
- [1] The glyptodon and armadillo are mammalian; the tortoise is a
- chelonian, a reptile, distinct classes of the animal kingdom;
- therefore the latter cannot be a representative of the former.
- (Trans.)
- We moved with difficulty across these granite fissures and chasms
- mingled with silex, crystals of quartz, and alluvial deposits, when a
- field, nay, more than a field, a vast plain, of bleached bones lay
- spread before us. It seemed like an immense cemetery, where the
- remains of twenty ages mingled their dust together. Huge mounds of
- bony fragments rose stage after stage in the distance. They undulated
- away to the limits of the horizon, and melted in the distance in a
- faint haze. There within three square miles were accumulated the
- materials for a complete history of the animal life of ages, a
- history scarcely outlined in the too recent strata of the inhabited
- world.
- But an impatient curiosity impelled our steps; crackling and
- rattling, our feet were trampling on the remains of prehistoric
- animals and interesting fossils, the possession of which is a matter
- of rivalry and contention between the museums of great cities. A
- thousand Cuviers could never have reconstructed the organic remains
- deposited in this magnificent and unparalleled collection.
- I stood amazed. My uncle had uplifted his long arms to the vault
- which was our sky; his mouth gaping wide, his eyes flashing behind
- his shining spectacles, his head balancing with an up-and-down
- motion, his whole attitude denoted unlimited astonishment. Here he
- stood facing an immense collection of scattered leptotheria,
- mericotheria, lophiodia, anoplotheria, megatheria, mastodons,
- protopithec�, pterodactyles, and all sorts of extinct monsters here
- assembled together for his special satisfaction. Fancy an
- enthusiastic bibliomaniac suddenly brought into the midst of the
- famous Alexandrian library burnt by Omar and restored by a miracle
- from its ashes! just such a crazed enthusiast was my uncle, Professor
- Liedenbrock.
- But more was to come, when, with a rush through clouds of bone dust,
- he laid his hand upon a bare skull, and cried with a voice trembling
- with excitement:
- "Axel! Axel! a human head!"
- "A human skull?" I cried, no less astonished.
- "Yes, nephew. Aha! M. Milne-Edwards! Ah! M. de Quatrefages, how I
- wish you were standing here at the side of Otto Liedenbrock!"
- CHAPTER XXXVIII.
- THE PROFESSOR IN HIS CHAIR AGAIN
- To understand this apostrophe of my uncle's, made to absent French
- savants, it will be necessary to allude to an event of high
- importance in a pal�ontological point of view, which had occurred a
- little while before our departure.
- On the 28th of March, 1863, some excavators working under the
- direction of M. Boucher de Perthes, in the stone quarries of Moulin
- Quignon, near Abbeville, in the department of Somme, found a human
- jawbone fourteen feet beneath the surface. It was the first fossil of
- this nature that had ever been brought to light. Not far distant were
- found stone hatchets and flint arrow-heads stained and encased by
- lapse of time with a uniform coat of rust.
- The noise of this discovery was very great, not in France alone, but in
- England and in Germany. Several savants of the French Institute, and
- amongst them MM. Milne-Edwards and de Quatrefages, saw at once the
- importance of this discovery, proved to demonstration the genuineness of
- the bone in question, and became the most ardent defendants in what the
- English called this 'trial of a jawbone.' To the geologists of the
- United Kingdom, who believed in the certainty of the fact--Messrs.
- Falconer, Busk, Carpenter, and others--scientific Germans were soon
- joined, and amongst them the forwardest, the most fiery, and the most
- enthusiastic, was my uncle Liedenbrock.
- Therefore the genuineness of a fossil human relic of the quaternary
- period seemed to be incontestably proved and admitted.
- It is true that this theory met with a most obstinate opponent in M.
- Elie de Beaumont. This high authority maintained that the soil of
- Moulin Quignon was not diluvial at all, but was of much more recent
- formation; and, agreeing in that with Cuvier, he refused to admit
- that the human species could be contemporary with the animals of the
- quaternary period. My uncle Liedenbrock, along with the great body of
- the geologists, had maintained his ground, disputed, and argued,
- until M. Elie de Beaumont stood almost alone in his opinion.
- We knew all these details, but we were not aware that since our
- departure the question had advanced to farther stages. Other similar
- maxillaries, though belonging to individuals of various types and
- different nations, were found in the loose grey soil of certain
- grottoes in France, Switzerland, and Belgium, as well as weapons,
- tools, earthen utensils, bones of children and adults. The existence
- therefore of man in the quaternary period seemed to become daily more
- certain.
- Nor was this all. Fresh discoveries of remains in the pleiocene
- formation had emboldened other geologists to refer back the human
- species to a higher antiquity still. It is true that these remains
- were not human bones, but objects bearing the traces of his
- handiwork, such as fossil leg-bones of animals, sculptured and carved
- evidently by the hand of man.
- Thus, at one bound, the record of the existence of man receded far
- back into the history of the ages past; he was a predecessor of the
- mastodon; he was a contemporary of the southern elephant; he lived a
- hundred thousand years ago, when, according to geologists, the
- pleiocene formation was in progress.
- Such then was the state of pal�ontological science, and what we knew
- of it was sufficient to explain our behaviour in the presence of this
- stupendous Golgotha. Any one may now understand the frenzied
- excitement of my uncle, when, twenty yards farther on, he found
- himself face to face with a primitive man!
- It was a perfectly recognisable human body. Had some particular soil,
- like that of the cemetery St. Michel, at Bordeaux, preserved it thus
- for so many ages? It might be so. But this dried corpse, with its
- parchment-like skin drawn tightly over the bony frame, the limbs
- still preserving their shape, sound teeth, abundant hair, and finger
- and toe nails of frightful length, this desiccated mummy startled us
- by appearing just as it had lived countless ages ago. I stood mute
- before this apparition of remote antiquity. My uncle, usually so
- garrulous, was struck dumb likewise. We raised the body. We stood it
- up against a rock. It seemed to stare at us out of its empty orbits.
- We sounded with our knuckles his hollow frame.
- After some moments' silence the Professor was himself again. Otto
- Liedenbrock, yielding to his nature, forgot all the circumstances of
- our eventful journey, forgot where we were standing, forgot the
- vaulted cavern which contained us. No doubt he was in mind back again
- in his Johann�um, holding forth to his pupils, for he assumed his
- learned air; and addressing himself to an imaginary audience, he
- proceeded thus:
- "Gentlemen, I have the honour to introduce to you a man of the
- quaternary or post-tertiary system. Eminent geologists have denied
- his existence, others no less eminent have affirmed it. The St.
- Thomases of pal�ontology, if they were here, might now touch him with
- their fingers, and would be obliged to acknowledge their error. I am
- quite aware that science has to be on its guard with discoveries of
- this kind. I know what capital enterprising individuals like Barnum
- have made out of fossil men. I have heard the tale of the kneepan of
- Ajax, the pretended body of Orestes claimed to have been found by the
- Spartans, and of the body of Asterius, ten cubits long, of which
- Pausanias speaks. I have read the reports of the skeleton of Trapani,
- found in the fourteenth century, and which was at the time identified
- as that of Polyphemus; and the history of the giant unearthed in the
- sixteenth century near Palermo. You know as well as I do, gentlemen,
- the analysis made at Lucerne in 1577 of those huge bones which the
- celebrated Dr. Felix Plater affirmed to be those of a giant nineteen
- feet high. I have gone through the treatises of Cassanion, and all
- those memoirs, pamphlets, answers, and rejoinders published
- respecting the skeleton of Teutobochus, the invader of Gaul, dug out
- of a sandpit in the Dauphin�, in 1613. In the eighteenth century I
- would have stood up for Scheuchzer's pre-adamite man against Peter
- Campet. I have perused a writing, entitled Gigan--"
- Here my uncle's unfortunate infirmity met him--that of being unable
- in public to pronounce hard words.
- "The pamphlet entitled Gigan--"
- He could get no further.
- "Giganteo--"
- It was not to be done. The unlucky word would not come out. At the
- Johann�um there would have been a laugh.
- "Gigantosteologie," at last the Professor burst out, between two
- words which I shall not record here.
- Then rushing on with renewed vigour, and with great animation:
- "Yes, gentlemen, I know all these things, and more. I know that
- Cuvier and Blumenbach have recognised in these bones nothing more
- remarkable than the bones of the mammoth and other mammals of the
- post-tertiary period. But in the presence of this specimen to doubt
- would be to insult science. There stands the body! You may see it,
- touch it. It is not a mere skeleton; it is an entire body, preserved
- for a purely anthropological end and purpose."
- I was good enough not to contradict this startling assertion.
- "If I could only wash it in a solution of sulphuric acid," pursued my
- uncle, "I should be able to clear it from all the earthy particles
- and the shells which are incrusted about it. But I do not possess
- that valuable solvent. Yet, such as it is, the body shall tell us its
- own wonderful story."
- Here the Professor laid hold of the fossil skeleton, and handled it
- with the skill of a dexterous showman.
- "You see," he said, "that it is not six feet long, and that we are
- still separated by a long interval from the pretended race of giants.
- As for the family to which it belongs, it is evidently Caucasian. It
- is the white race, our own. The skull of this fossil is a regular
- oval, or rather ovoid. It exhibits no prominent cheekbones, no
- projecting jaws. It presents no appearance of that prognathism which
- diminishes the facial angle. [1] Measure that angle. It is nearly
- ninety degrees. But I will go further in my deductions, and I will
- affirm that this specimen of the human family is of the Japhetic
- race, which has since spread from the Indies to the Atlantic. Don't
- smile, gentlemen."
- Nobody was smiling; but the learned Professor was frequently
- disturbed by the broad smiles provoked by his learned eccentricities.
- "Yes," he pursued with animation, "this is a fossil man, the
- contemporary of the mastodons whose remains fill this amphitheatre.
- But if you ask me how he came there, how those strata on which he lay
- slipped down into this enormous hollow in the globe, I confess I
- cannot answer that question. No doubt in the post-tertiary period
- considerable commotions were still disturbing the crust of the earth.
- The long-continued cooling of the globe produced chasms, fissures,
- clefts, and faults, into which, very probably, portions of the upper
- earth may have fallen. I make no rash assertions; but there is the
- man surrounded by his own works, by hatchets, by flint arrow-heads,
- which are the characteristics of the stone age. And unless he came
- here, like myself, as a tourist on a visit and as a pioneer of
- science, I can entertain no doubt of the authenticity of his remote
- origin."
- [1] The facial angle is formed by two lines, one touching the brow
- and the front teeth, the other from the orifice of the ear to the
- lower line of the nostrils. The greater this angle, the higher
- intelligence denoted by the formation of the skull. Prognathism is
- that projection of the jaw-bones which sharpens or lessons this
- angle, and which is illustrated in the negro countenance and in the
- lowest savages.
- The Professor ceased to speak, and the audience broke out into loud
- and unanimous applause. For of course my uncle was right, and wiser
- men than his nephew would have had some trouble to refute his
- statements.
- Another remarkable thing. This fossil body was not the only one in
- this immense catacomb. We came upon other bodies at every step
- amongst this mortal dust, and my uncle might select the most curious
- of these specimens to demolish the incredulity of sceptics.
- In fact it was a wonderful spectacle, that of these generations of
- men and animals commingled in a common cemetery. Then one very
- serious question arose presently which we scarcely dared to suggest.
- Had all those creatures slided through a great fissure in the crust
- of the earth, down to the shores of the Liedenbrock sea, when they
- were dead and turning to dust, or had they lived and grown and died
- here in this subterranean world under a false sky, just like
- inhabitants of the upper earth? Until the present time we had seen
- alive only marine monsters and fishes. Might not some living man,
- some native of the abyss, be yet a wanderer below on this desert
- strand?
- CHAPTER XXXIX.
- FOREST SCENERY ILLUMINATED BY ELECTRICITY
- For another half hour we trod upon a pavement of bones. We pushed on,
- impelled by our burning curiosity. What other marvels did this cavern
- contain? What new treasures lay here for science to unfold? I was
- prepared for any surprise, my imagination was ready for any
- astonishment however astounding.
- We had long lost sight of the sea shore behind the hills of bones.
- The rash Professor, careless of losing his way, hurried me forward.
- We advanced in silence, bathed in luminous electric fluid. By some
- phenomenon which I am unable to explain, it lighted up all sides of
- every object equally. Such was its diffusiveness, there being no
- central point from which the light emanated, that shadows no longer
- existed. You might have thought yourself under the rays of a vertical
- sun in a tropical region at noonday and the height of summer. No
- vapour was visible. The rocks, the distant mountains, a few isolated
- clumps of forest trees in the distance, presented a weird and
- wonderful aspect under these totally new conditions of a universal
- diffusion of light. We were like Hoffmann's shadowless man.
- After walking a mile we reached the outskirts of a vast forest, but
- not one of those forests of fungi which bordered Port Gr�uben.
- Here was the vegetation of the tertiary period in its fullest blaze
- of magnificence. Tall palms, belonging to species no longer living,
- splendid palmacites, firs, yews, cypress trees, thujas,
- representatives of the conifers, were linked together by a tangled
- network of long climbing plants. A soft carpet of moss and hepaticas
- luxuriously clothed the soil. A few sparkling streams ran almost in
- silence under what would have been the shade of the trees, but that
- there was no shadow. On their banks grew tree-ferns similar to those
- we grow in hothouses. But a remarkable feature was the total absence
- of colour in all those trees, shrubs, and plants, growing without the
- life-giving heat and light of the sun. Everything seemed mixed-up and
- confounded in one uniform silver grey or light brown tint like that
- of fading and faded leaves. Not a green leaf anywhere, and the
- flowers--which were abundant enough in the tertiary period, which
- first gave birth to flowers--looked like brown-paper flowers,
- without colour or scent.
- My uncle Liedenbrock ventured to penetrate under this colossal grove.
- I followed him, not without fear. Since nature had here provided
- vegetable nourishment, why should not the terrible mammals be there
- too? I perceived in the broad clearings left by fallen trees, decayed
- with age, leguminose plants, acerine�, rubice� and many other eatable
- shrubs, dear to ruminant animals at every period. Then I observed,
- mingled together in confusion, trees of countries far apart on the
- surface of the globe. The oak and the palm were growing side by side,
- the Australian eucalyptus leaned against the Norwegian pine, the
- birch-tree of the north mingled its foliage with New Zealand kauris.
- It was enough to distract the most ingenious classifier of
- terrestrial botany.
- Suddenly I halted. I drew back my uncle.
- The diffused light revealed the smallest object in the dense and
- distant thickets. I had thought I saw--no! I did see, with my own
- eyes, vast colossal forms moving amongst the trees. They were
- gigantic animals; it was a herd of mastodons--not fossil remains,
- but living and resembling those the bones of which were found in the
- marshes of Ohio in 1801. I saw those huge elephants whose long,
- flexible trunks were grouting and turning up the soil under the trees
- like a legion of serpents. I could hear the crashing noise of their
- long ivory tusks boring into the old decaying trunks. The boughs
- cracked, and the leaves torn away by cartloads went down the
- cavernous throats of the vast brutes.
- So, then, the dream in which I had had a vision of the prehistoric
- world, of the tertiary and post-tertiary periods, was now realised.
- And there we were alone, in the bowels of the earth, at the mercy of
- its wild inhabitants!
- My uncle was gazing with intense and eager interest.
- "Come on!" said he, seizing my arm. "Forward! forward!"
- "No, I will not!" I cried. "We have no firearms. What could we do in the
- midst of a herd of these four-footed giants? Come away, uncle--come! No
- human being may with safety dare the anger of these monstrous beasts."
- "No human creature?" replied my uncle in a lower voice. "You are
- wrong, Axel. Look, look down there! I fancy I see a living creature
- similar to ourselves: it is a man!"
- I looked, shaking my head incredulously. But though at first I was
- unbelieving I had to yield to the evidence of my senses.
- In fact, at a distance of a quarter of a mile, leaning against the
- trunk of a gigantic kauri, stood a human being, the Proteus of those
- subterranean regions, a new son of Neptune, watching this countless
- herd of mastodons.
- Immanis pecoris custos, immanior ipse. [1]
- [1] "The shepherd of gigantic herds, and huger still himself."
- Yes, truly, huger still himself. It was no longer a fossil being like
- him whose dried remains we had easily lifted up in the field of
- bones; it was a giant, able to control those monsters. In stature he
- was at least twelve feet high. His head, huge and unshapely as a
- buffalo's, was half hidden in the thick and tangled growth of his
- unkempt hair. It most resembled the mane of the primitive elephant.
- In his hand he wielded with ease an enormous bough, a staff worthy of
- this shepherd of the geologic period.
- We stood petrified and speechless with amazement. But he might see
- us! We must fly!
- "Come, do come!" I said to my uncle, who for once allowed himself to
- be persuaded.
- In another quarter of an hour our nimble heels had carried us beyond
- the reach of this horrible monster.
- And yet, now that I can reflect quietly, now that my spirit has grown
- calm again, now that months have slipped by since this strange and
- supernatural meeting, what am I to think? what am I to believe? I
- must conclude that it was impossible that our senses had been
- deceived, that our eyes did not see what we supposed they saw. No
- human being lives in this subterranean world; no generation of men
- dwells in those inferior caverns of the globe, unknown to and
- unconnected with the inhabitants of its surface. It is absurd to
- believe it!
- I had rather admit that it may have been some animal whose structure
- resembled the human, some ape or baboon of the early geological ages,
- some protopitheca, or some mesopitheca, some early or middle ape like
- that discovered by Mr. Lartet in the bone cave of Sansau. But this
- creature surpassed in stature all the measurements known in modern
- pal�ontology. But that a man, a living man, and therefore whole
- generations doubtless besides, should be buried there in the bowels
- of the earth, is impossible.
- However, we had left behind us the luminous forest, dumb with
- astonishment, overwhelmed and struck down with a terror which
- amounted to stupefaction. We kept running on for fear the horrible
- monster might be on our track. It was a flight, a fall, like that
- fearful pulling and dragging which is peculiar to nightmare.
- Instinctively we got back to the Liedenbrock sea, and I cannot say
- into what vagaries my mind would not have carried me but for a
- circumstance which brought me back to practical matters.
- Although I was certain that we were now treading upon a soil not
- hitherto touched by our feet, I often perceived groups of rocks which
- reminded me of those about Port Gr�uben. Besides, this seemed to
- confirm the indications of the needle, and to show that we had
- against our will returned to the north of the Liedenbrock sea.
- Occasionally we felt quite convinced. Brooks and waterfalls were
- tumbling everywhere from the projections in the rocks. I thought I
- recognised the bed of surturbrand, our faithful Hansbach, and the
- grotto in which I had recovered life and consciousness. Then a few
- paces farther on, the arrangement of the cliffs, the appearance of an
- unrecognised stream, or the strange outline of a rock, came to throw
- me again into doubt.
- I communicated my doubts to my uncle. Like myself, he hesitated; he
- could recognise nothing again amidst this monotonous scene.
- "Evidently," said I, "we have not landed again at our original
- starting point, but the storm has carried us a little higher, and if
- we follow the shore we shall find Port Gr�uben."
- "If that is the case it will be useless to continue our exploration,
- and we had better return to our raft. But, Axel, are you not
- mistaken?"
- "It is difficult to speak decidedly, uncle, for all these rocks are
- so very much alike. Yet I think I recognise the promontory at the
- foot of which Hans constructed our launch. We must be very near the
- little port, if indeed this is not it," I added, examining a creek
- which I thought I recognised.
- "No, Axel, we should at least find our own traces and I see nothing--"
- "But I do see," I cried, darting upon an object lying on the sand.
- And I showed my uncle a rusty dagger which I had just picked up.
- "Come," said he, "had you this weapon with you?"
- "I! No, certainly! But you, perhaps--"
- "Not that I am aware," said the Professor. "I have never had this
- object in my possession."
- "Well, this is strange!"
- "No, Axel, it is very simple. The Icelanders often wear arms of this
- kind. This must have belonged to Hans, and he has lost it."
- I shook my head. Hans had never had an object like this in his
- possession.
- "Did it not belong to some pre-adamite warrior?" I cried, "to some
- living man, contemporary with the huge cattle-driver? But no. This is
- not a relic of the stone age. It is not even of the iron age. This
- blade is steel--"
- My uncle stopped me abruptly on my way to a dissertation which would
- have taken me a long way, and said coolly:
- "Be calm, Axel, and reasonable. This dagger belongs to the sixteenth
- century; it is a poniard, such as gentlemen carried in their belts to
- give the coup _de grace._ Its origin is Spanish. It was never either
- yours, or mine, or the hunter's, nor did it belong to any of those
- human beings who may or may not inhabit this inner world. See, it was
- never jagged like this by cutting men's throats; its blade is coated
- with a rust neither a day, nor a year, nor a hundred years old."
- The Professor was getting excited according to his wont, and was
- allowing his imagination to run away with him.
- "Axel, we are on the way towards the grand discovery. This blade has
- been left on the strand for from one to three hundred years, and has
- blunted its edge upon the rocks that fringe this subterranean sea!"
- "But it has not come alone. It has not twisted itself out of shape;
- some one has been here before us!
- "Yes--a man has."
- "And who was that man?"
- "A man who has engraved his name somewhere with that dagger. That man
- wanted once more to mark the way to the centre of the earth. Let us
- look about: look about!"
- And, wonderfully interested, we peered all along the high wall,
- peeping into every fissure which might open out into a gallery.
- And so we arrived at a place where the shore was much narrowed. Here
- the sea came to lap the foot of the steep cliff, leaving a passage no
- wider than a couple of yards. Between two boldly projecting rocks
- appeared the mouth of a dark tunnel.
- There, upon a granite slab, appeared two mysterious graven letters,
- half eaten away by time. They were the initials of the bold and
- daring traveller:
- [Runic initials appear here]
- "A. S.," shouted my uncle. "Arne Saknussemm! Arne Saknussemm
- everywhere!"
- CHAPTER XL.
- PREPARATIONS FOR BLASTING A PASSAGE TO THE CENTRE OF THE EARTH
- Since the start upon this marvellous pilgrimage I had been through so
- many astonishments that I might well be excused for thinking myself
- well hardened against any further surprise. Yet at the sight of these
- two letters, engraved on this spot three hundred years ago, I stood
- aghast in dumb amazement. Not only were the initials of the learned
- alchemist visible upon the living rock, but there lay the iron point
- with which the letters had been engraved. I could no longer doubt of
- the existence of that wonderful traveller and of the fact of his
- unparalleled journey, without the most glaring incredulity.
- Whilst these reflections were occupying me, Professor Liedenbrock had
- launched into a somewhat rhapsodical eulogium, of which Arne
- Saknussemm was, of course, the hero.
- "Thou marvellous genius!" he cried, "thou hast not forgotten one
- indication which might serve to lay open to mortals the road through
- the terrestrial crust; and thy fellow-creatures may even now, after
- the lapse of three centuries, again trace thy footsteps through these
- deep and darksome ways. You reserved the contemplation of these
- wonders for other eyes besides your own. Your name, graven from stage
- to stage, leads the bold follower of your footsteps to the very
- centre of our planet's core, and there again we shall find your own
- name written with your own hand. I too will inscribe my name upon
- this dark granite page. But for ever henceforth let this cape that
- advances into the sea discovered by yourself be known by your own
- illustrious name--Cape Saknussemm."
- Such were the glowing words of panegyric which fell upon my attentive
- ear, and I could not resist the sentiment of enthusiasm with which I
- too was infected. The fire of zeal kindled afresh in me. I forgot
- everything. I dismissed from my mind the past perils of the journey,
- the future danger of our return. That which another had done I
- supposed we might also do, and nothing that was not superhuman
- appeared impossible to me.
- "Forward! forward!" I cried.
- I was already darting down the gloomy tunnel when the Professor
- stopped me; he, the man of impulse, counselled patience and coolness.
- "Let us first return to Hans," he said, "and bring the raft to this
- spot."
- I obeyed, not without dissatisfaction, and passed out rapidly among
- the rocks on the shore.
- I said: "Uncle, do you know it seems to me that circumstances have
- wonderfully befriended us hitherto?"
- "You think so, Axel?"
- "No doubt; even the tempest has put us on the right way. Blessings on
- that storm! It has brought us back to this coast from which fine
- weather would have carried us far away. Suppose we had touched with
- our prow (the prow of a rudder!) the southern shore of the
- Liedenbrock sea, what would have become of us? We should never have
- seen the name of Saknussemm, and we should at this moment be
- imprisoned on a rockbound, impassable coast."
- "Yes, Axel, it is providential that whilst supposing we were steering
- south we should have just got back north at Cape Saknussemm. I must
- say that this is astonishing, and that I feel I have no way to
- explain it."
- "What does that signify, uncle? Our business is not to explain facts,
- but to use them!"
- "Certainly; but--"
- "Well, uncle, we are going to resume the northern route, and to pass
- under the north countries of Europe--under Sweden, Russia, Siberia:
- who knows where?--instead of burrowing under the deserts of Africa,
- or perhaps the waves of the Atlantic; and that is all I want to know."
- "Yes, Axel, you are right. It is all for the best, since we have left
- that weary, horizontal sea, which led us nowhere. Now we shall go
- down, down, down! Do you know that it is now only 1,500 leagues to
- the centre of the globe?"
- "Is that all?" I cried. "Why, that's nothing. Let us start: march!"
- All this crazy talk was going on still when we met the hunter.
- Everything was made ready for our instant departure. Every bit of
- cordage was put on board. We took our places, and with our sail set,
- Hans steered us along the coast to Cape Saknussemm.
- The wind was unfavourable to a species of launch not calculated for
- shallow water. In many places we were obliged to push ourselves along
- with iron-pointed sticks. Often the sunken rocks just beneath the
- surface obliged us to deviate from our straight course. At last,
- after three hours' sailing, about six in the evening we reached a
- place suitable for our landing. I jumped ashore, followed by my uncle
- and the Icelander. This short passage had not served to cool my
- ardour. On the contrary, I even proposed to burn 'our ship,' to
- prevent the possibility of return; but my uncle would not consent to
- that. I thought him singularly lukewarm.
- "At least," I said, "don't let us lose a minute."
- "Yes, yes, lad," he replied; "but first let us examine this new
- gallery, to see if we shall require our ladders."
- My uncle put his Ruhmkorff's apparatus in action; the raft moored to
- the shore was left alone; the mouth of the tunnel was not twenty
- yards from us; and our party, with myself at the head, made for it
- without a moment's delay.
- The aperture, which was almost round, was about five feet in
- diameter; the dark passage was cut out in the live rock and lined
- with a coat of the eruptive matter which formerly issued from it; the
- interior was level with the ground outside, so that we were able to
- enter without difficulty. We were following a horizontal plane, when,
- only six paces in, our progress was interrupted by an enormous block
- just across our way.
- "Accursed rock!" I cried in a passion, finding myself suddenly
- confronted by an impassable obstacle.
- Right and left we searched in vain for a way, up and down, side to
- side; there was no getting any farther. I felt fearfully
- disappointed, and I would not admit that the obstacle was final. I
- stopped, I looked underneath the block: no opening. Above: granite
- still. Hans passed his lamp over every portion of the barrier in
- vain. We must give up all hope of passing it.
- I sat down in despair. My uncle strode from side to side in the
- narrow passage.
- "But how was it with Saknussemm?" I cried.
- "Yes," said my uncle, "was he stopped by this stone barrier?"
- "No, no," I replied with animation. "This fragment of rock has been
- shaken down by some shock or convulsion, or by one of those magnetic
- storms which agitate these regions, and has blocked up the passage
- which lay open to him. Many years have elapsed since the return of
- Saknussemm to the surface and the fall of this huge fragment. Is it
- not evident that this gallery was once the way open to the course of
- the lava, and that at that time there must have been a free passage?
- See here are recent fissures grooving and channelling the granite
- roof. This roof itself is formed of fragments of rock carried down,
- of enormous stones, as if by some giant's hand; but at one time the
- expulsive force was greater than usual, and this block, like the
- falling keystone of a ruined arch, has slipped down to the ground and
- blocked up the way. It is only an accidental obstruction, not met by
- Saknussemm, and if we don't destroy it we shall be unworthy to reach
- the centre of the earth."
- Such was my sentence! The soul of the Professor had passed into me.
- The genius of discovery possessed me wholly. I forgot the past, I
- scorned the future. I gave not a thought to the things of the surface
- of this globe into which I had dived; its cities and its sunny
- plains, Hamburg and the K�nigstrasse, even poor Gr�uben, who must
- have given us up for lost, all were for the time dismissed from the
- pages of my memory.
- "Well," cried my uncle, "let us make a way with our pickaxes."
- "Too hard for the pickaxe."
- "Well, then, the spade."
- "That would take us too long."
- "What, then?"
- "Why gunpowder, to be sure! Let us mine the obstacle and blow it up."
- "Oh, yes, it is only a bit of rock to blast!"
- "Hans, to work!" cried my uncle.
- The Icelander returned to the raft and soon came back with an iron
- bar which he made use of to bore a hole for the charge. This was no
- easy work. A hole was to be made large enough to hold fifty pounds of
- guncotton, whose expansive force is four times that of gunpowder.
- I was terribly excited. Whilst Hans was at work I was actively
- helping my uncle to prepare a slow match of wetted powder encased in
- linen.
- "This will do it," I said.
- "It will," replied my uncle.
- By midnight our mining preparations were over; the charge was rammed
- into the hole, and the slow match uncoiled along the gallery showed
- its end outside the opening.
- A spark would now develop the whole of our preparations into activity.
- "To-morrow," said the Professor.
- I had to be resigned and to wait six long hours.
- CHAPTER XLI.
- THE GREAT EXPLOSION AND THE RUSH DOWN BELOW
- The next day, Thursday, August 27, is a well-remembered date in our
- subterranean journey. It never returns to my memory without sending
- through me a shudder of horror and a palpitation of the heart. From
- that hour we had no further occasion for the exercise of reason, or
- judgment, or skill, or contrivance. We were henceforth to be hurled
- along, the playthings of the fierce elements of the deep.
- At six we were afoot. The moment drew near to clear a way by blasting
- through the opposing mass of granite.
- I begged for the honour of lighting the fuse. This duty done, I was
- to join my companions on the raft, which had not yet been unloaded;
- we should then push off as far as we could and avoid the dangers
- arising from the explosion, the effects of which were not likely to
- be confined to the rock itself.
- The fuse was calculated to burn ten minutes before setting fire to
- the mine. I therefore had sufficient time to get away to the raft.
- I prepared to fulfil my task with some anxiety.
- After a hasty meal, my uncle and the hunter embarked whilst I
- remained on shore. I was supplied with a lighted lantern to set fire
- to the fuse. "Now go," said my uncle, "and return immediately to us."
- "Don't be uneasy," I replied. "I will not play by the way." I
- immediately proceeded to the mouth of the tunnel. I opened my
- lantern. I laid hold of the end of the match. The Professor stood,
- chronometer in hand. "Ready?" he cried.
- "Ay."
- "Fire!"
- I instantly plunged the end of the fuse into the lantern. It
- spluttered and flamed, and I ran at the top of my speed to the raft.
- "Come on board quickly, and let us push off."
- Hans, with a vigorous thrust, sent us from the shore. The raft shot
- twenty fathoms out to sea.
- It was a moment of intense excitement. The Professor was watching the
- hand of the chronometer.
- "Five minutes more!" he said. "Four! Three!"
- My pulse beat half-seconds.
- "Two! One! Down, granite rocks; down with you."
- What took place at that moment? I believe I did not hear the dull
- roar of the explosion. But the rocks suddenly assumed a new
- arrangement: they rent asunder like a curtain. I saw a bottomless pit
- open on the shore. The sea, lashed into sudden fury, rose up in an
- enormous billow, on the ridge of which the unhappy raft was uplifted
- bodily in the air with all its crew and cargo.
- We all three fell down flat. In less than a second we were in deep,
- unfathomable darkness. Then I felt as if not only myself but the raft
- also had no support beneath. I thought it was sinking; but it was not
- so. I wanted to speak to my uncle, but the roaring of the waves
- prevented him from hearing even the sound of my voice.
- In spite of darkness, noise, astonishment, and terror, I then
- understood what had taken place.
- On the other side of the blown-up rock was an abyss. The explosion
- had caused a kind of earthquake in this fissured and abysmal region;
- a great gulf had opened; and the sea, now changed into a torrent, was
- hurrying us along into it.
- I gave myself up for lost.
- An hour passed away--two hours, perhaps--I cannot tell. We clutched
- each other fast, to save ourselves from being thrown off the raft. We
- felt violent shocks whenever we were borne heavily against the craggy
- projections. Yet these shocks were not very frequent, from which I
- concluded that the gully was widening. It was no doubt the same road
- that Saknussemm had taken; but instead of walking peaceably down it,
- as he had done, we were carrying a whole sea along with us.
- These ideas, it will be understood, presented themselves to my mind
- in a vague and undetermined form. I had difficulty in associating any
- ideas together during this headlong race, which seemed like a
- vertical descent. To judge by the air which was whistling past me and
- made a whizzing in my ears, we were moving faster than the fastest
- express trains. To light a torch under these' conditions would have
- been impossible; and our last electric apparatus had been shattered
- by the force of the explosion.
- I was therefore much surprised to see a clear light shining near me.
- It lighted up the calm and unmoved countenance of Hans. The skilful
- huntsman had succeeded in lighting the lantern; and although it
- flickered so much as to threaten to go out, it threw a fitful light
- across the awful darkness.
- I was right in my supposition. It was a wide gallery. The dim light
- could not show us both its walls at once. The fall of the waters
- which were carrying us away exceeded that of the swiftest rapids in
- American rivers. Its surface seemed composed of a sheaf of arrows
- hurled with inconceivable force; I cannot convey my impressions by a
- better comparison. The raft, occasionally seized by an eddy, spun
- round as it still flew along. When it approached the walls of the
- gallery I threw on them the light of the lantern, and I could judge
- somewhat of the velocity of our speed by noticing how the jagged
- projections of the rocks spun into endless ribbons and bands, so that
- we seemed confined within a network of shifting lines. I supposed we
- were running at the rate of thirty leagues an hour.
- My uncle and I gazed on each other with haggard eyes, clinging to the
- stump of the mast, which had snapped asunder at the first shock of
- our great catastrophe. We kept our backs to the wind, not to be
- stifled by the rapidity of a movement which no human power could
- check.
- Hours passed away. No change in our situation; but a discovery came
- to complicate matters and make them worse.
- In seeking to put our cargo into somewhat better order, I found that
- the greater part of the articles embarked had disappeared at the
- moment of the explosion, when the sea broke in upon us with such
- violence. I wanted to know exactly what we had saved, and with the
- lantern in my hand I began my examination. Of our instruments none
- were saved but the compass and the chronometer; our stock of ropes
- and ladders was reduced to the bit of cord rolled round the stump of
- the mast! Not a spade, not a pickaxe, not a hammer was left us; and,
- irreparable disaster! we had only one day's provisions left.
- I searched every nook and corner, every crack and cranny in the raft.
- There was nothing. Our provisions were reduced to one bit of salt
- meat and a few biscuits.
- I stared at our failing supplies stupidly. I refused to take in the
- gravity of our loss. And yet what was the use of troubling myself. If
- we had had provisions enough for months, how could we get out of the
- abyss into which we were being hurled by an irresistible torrent? Why
- should we fear the horrors of famine, when death was swooping down
- upon us in a multitude of other forms? Would there be time left to
- die of starvation?
- Yet by an inexplicable play of the imagination I forgot my present
- dangers, to contemplate the threatening future. Was there any chance
- of escaping from the fury of this impetuous torrent, and of returning
- to the surface of the globe? I could not form the slightest
- conjecture how or when. But one chance in a thousand, or ten
- thousand, is still a chance; whilst death from starvation would leave
- us not the smallest hope in the world.
- The thought came into my mind to declare the whole truth to my uncle,
- to show him the dreadful straits to which we were reduced, and to
- calculate how long we might yet expect to live. But I had the courage
- to preserve silence. I wished to leave him cool and self-possessed.
- At that moment the light from our lantern began to sink by little and
- little, and then went out entirely. The wick had burnt itself out.
- Black night reigned again; and there was no hope left of being able
- to dissipate the palpable darkness. We had yet a torch left, but we
- could not have kept it alight. Then, like a child, I closed my eyes
- firmly, not to see the darkness.
- After a considerable lapse of time our speed redoubled. I could
- perceive it by the sharpness of the currents that blew past my face.
- The descent became steeper. I believe we were no longer sliding, but
- falling down. I had an impression that we were dropping vertically.
- My uncle's hand, and the vigorous arm of Hans, held me fast.
- Suddenly, after a space of time that I could not measure, I felt a
- shock. The raft had not struck against any hard resistance, but had
- suddenly been checked in its fall. A waterspout, an immense liquid
- column, was beating upon the surface of the waters. I was
- suffocating! I was drowning!
- But this sudden flood was not of long duration. In a few seconds I
- found myself in the air again, which I inhaled with all the force of
- my lungs. My uncle and Hans were still holding me fast by the arms;
- and the raft was still carrying us.
- CHAPTER XLII.
- HEADLONG SPEED UPWARD THROUGH THE HORRORS OF DARKNESS
- It might have been, as I guessed, about ten at night. The first of my
- senses which came into play after this last bout was that of hearing.
- All at once I could hear; and it was a real exercise of the sense of
- hearing. I could hear the silence in the gallery after the din which
- for hours had stunned me. At last these words of my uncle's came to
- me like a vague murmuring:
- "We are going up."
- "What do you mean?" I cried.
- "Yes, we are going up--up!"
- I stretched out my arm. I touched the wall, and drew back my hand
- bleeding. We were ascending with extreme rapidity.
- "The torch! The torch!" cried the Professor.
- Not without difficulty Hans succeeded in lighting the torch; and the
- flame, preserving its upward tendency, threw enough light to show us
- what kind of a place we were in.
- "Just as I thought," said the Professor "We are in a tunnel not
- four-and-twenty feet in diameter. The water had reached the bottom of
- the gulf. It is now rising to its level, and carrying us with it."
- "Where to?"
- "I cannot tell; but we must be ready for anything. We are mounting at
- a speed which seems to me of fourteen feet in a second, or ten miles
- an hour. At this rate we shall get on."
- "Yes, if nothing stops us; if this well has an aperture. But suppose
- it to be stopped. If the air is condensed by the pressure of this
- column of water we shall be crushed."
- "Axel," replied the Professor with perfect coolness, "our situation
- is almost desperate; but there are some chances of deliverance, and
- it is these that I am considering. If at every instant we may perish,
- so at every instant we may be saved. Let us then be prepared to seize
- upon the smallest advantage."
- "But what shall we do now?"
- "Recruit our strength by eating."
- At these words I fixed a haggard eye upon my uncle. That which I had
- been so unwilling to confess at last had to be told.
- "Eat, did you say?"
- "Yes, at once."
- The Professor added a few words in Danish, but Hans shook his head
- mournfully.
- "What!" cried my uncle. "Have we lost our provisions?"
- "Yes; here is all we have left; one bit of salt meat for the three."
- My uncle stared at me as if he could not understand.
- "Well," said I, "do you think we have any chance of being saved?"
- My question was unanswered.
- An hour passed away. I began to feel the pangs of a violent hunger.
- My companions were suffering too, and not one of us dared touch this
- wretched remnant of our goodly store.
- But now we were mounting up with excessive speed. Sometimes the air
- would cut our breath short, as is experienced by aeronauts ascending
- too rapidly. But whilst they suffer from cold in proportion to their
- rise, we were beginning to feel a contrary effect. The heat was
- increasing in a manner to cause us the most fearful anxiety, and
- certainly the temperature was at this moment at the height of 100�
- Fahr.
- What could be the meaning of such a change? Up to this time facts had
- supported the theories of Davy and of Liedenbrock; until now
- particular conditions of non-conducting rocks, electricity and
- magnetism, had tempered the laws of nature, giving us only a
- moderately warm climate, for the theory of a central fire remained in
- my estimation the only one that was true and explicable. Were we then
- turning back to where the phenomena of central heat ruled in all
- their rigour and would reduce the most refractory rocks to the state
- of a molten liquid? I feared this, and said to the Professor:
- "If we are neither drowned, nor shattered to pieces, nor starved to
- death, there is still the chance that we may be burned alive and
- reduced to ashes."
- At this he shrugged his shoulders and returned to his thoughts.
- Another hour passed, and, except some slight increase in the
- temperature, nothing new had happened.
- "Come," said he, "we must determine upon something."
- "Determine on what?" said I.
- "Yes, we must recruit our strength by carefully rationing ourselves,
- and so prolong our existence by a few hours. But we shall be reduced
- to very great weakness at last."
- "And our last hour is not far off."
- "Well, if there is a chance of safety, if a moment for active
- exertion presents itself, where should we find the required strength
- if we allowed ourselves to be enfeebled by hunger?"
- "Well, uncle, when this bit of meat has been devoured what shall we
- have left?"
- "Nothing, Axel, nothing at all. But will it do you any more good to
- devour it with your eyes than with your teeth? Your reasoning has in
- it neither sense nor energy."
- "Then don't you despair?" I cried irritably.
- "No, certainly not," was the Professor's firm reply.
- "What! do you think there is any chance of safety left?"
- "Yes, I do; as long as the heart beats, as long as body and soul keep
- together, I cannot admit that any creature endowed with a will has
- need to despair of life."
- Resolute words these! The man who could speak so, under such
- circumstances, was of no ordinary type.
- "Finally, what do you mean to do?" I asked.
- "Eat what is left to the last crumb, and recruit our fading strength.
- This meal will be our last, perhaps: so let it be! But at any rate we
- shall once more be men, and not exhausted, empty bags."
- "Well, let us consume it then," I cried.
- My uncle took the piece of meat and the few biscuits which had
- escaped from the general destruction. He divided them into three
- equal portions and gave one to each. This made about a pound of
- nourishment for each. The Professor ate his greedily, with a kind of
- feverish rage. I ate without pleasure, almost with disgust; Hans
- quietly, moderately, masticating his small mouthfuls without any
- noise, and relishing them with the calmness of a man above all
- anxiety about the future. By diligent search he had found a flask of
- Hollands; he offered it to us each in turn, and this generous
- beverage cheered us up slightly.
- "_Fortr�fflig,_" said Hans, drinking in his turn.
- "Excellent," replied my uncle.
- A glimpse of hope had returned, although without cause. But our last
- meal was over, and it was now five in the morning.
- Man is so constituted that health is a purely negative state. Hunger
- once satisfied, it is difficult for a man to imagine the horrors of
- starvation; they cannot be understood without being felt.
- Therefore it was that after our long fast these few mouthfuls of meat
- and biscuit made us triumph over our past agonies.
- But as soon as the meal was done, we each of us fell deep into
- thought. What was Hans thinking of--that man of the far West, but
- who seemed ruled by the fatalist doctrines of the East?
- As for me, my thoughts were made up of remembrances, and they carried
- me up to the surface of the globe of which I ought never to have
- taken leave. The house in the K�nigstrasse, my poor dear Gr�uben,
- that kind soul Martha, flitted like visions before my eyes, and in
- the dismal moanings which from time to time reached my ears I thought
- I could distinguish the roar of the traffic of the great cities upon
- earth.
- My uncle still had his eye upon his work. Torch in hand, he tried to
- gather some idea of our situation from the observation of the strata.
- This calculation could, at best, be but a vague approximation; but a
- learned man is always a philosopher when he succeeds in remaining
- cool, and assuredly Professor Liedenbrock possessed this quality to a
- surprising degree.
- I could hear him murmuring geological terms. I could understand them,
- and in spite of myself I felt interested in this last geological
- study.
- "Eruptive granite," he was saying. "We are still in the primitive
- period. But we are going up, up, higher still. Who can tell?"
- Ah! who can tell? With his hand he was examining the perpendicular
- wall, and in a few more minutes he continued:
- "This is gneiss! here is mica schist! Ah! presently we shall come to
- the transition period, and then--"
- What did the Professor mean? Could he be trying to measure the
- thickness of the crust of the earth that lay between us and the world
- above? Had he any means of making this calculation? No, he had not
- the aneroid, and no guessing could supply its place.
- Still the temperature kept rising, and I felt myself steeped in a
- broiling atmosphere. I could only compare it to the heat of a furnace
- at the moment when the molten metal is running into the mould.
- Gradually we had been obliged to throw aside our coats and
- waistcoats, the lightest covering became uncomfortable and even
- painful.
- "Are we rising into a fiery furnace?" I cried at one moment when the
- heat was redoubling.
- "No," replied my uncle, "that is impossible--quite impossible!"
- "Yet," I answered, feeling the wall, "this well is burning hot."
- At the same moment, touching the water, I had to withdraw my hand in
- haste.
- "The water is scalding," I cried.
- This time the Professor's only answer was an angry gesture.
- Then an unconquerable terror seized upon me, from which I could no
- longer get free. I felt that a catastrophe was approaching before
- which the boldest spirit must quail. A dim, vague notion laid hold of
- my mind, but which was fast hardening into certainty. I tried to
- repel it, but it would return. I dared not express it in plain terms.
- Yet a few involuntary observations confirmed me in my view. By the
- flickering light of the torch I could distinguish contortions in the
- granite beds; a phenomenon was unfolding in which electricity would
- play the principal part; then this unbearable heat, this boiling
- water! I consulted the compass.
- The compass had lost its properties! it had ceased to act properly!
- CHAPTER XLIII.
- SHOT OUT OF A VOLCANO AT LAST!
- Yes: our compass was no longer a guide; the needle flew from pole to
- pole with a kind of frenzied impulse; it ran round the dial, and spun
- hither and thither as if it were giddy or intoxicated.
- I knew quite well that according to the best received theories the
- mineral covering of the globe is never at absolute rest; the changes
- brought about by the chemical decomposition of its component parts,
- the agitation caused by great liquid torrents, and the magnetic
- currents, are continually tending to disturb it--even when living
- beings upon its surface may fancy that all is quiet below. A
- phenomenon of this kind would not have greatly alarmed me, or at any
- rate it would not have given rise to dreadful apprehensions.
- But other facts, other circumstances, of a peculiar nature, came to
- reveal to me by degrees the true state of the case. There came
- incessant and continuous explosions. I could only compare them to the
- loud rattle of a long train of chariots driven at full speed over the
- stones, or a roar of unintermitting thunder.
- Then the disordered compass, thrown out of gear by the electric
- currents, confirmed me in a growing conviction. The mineral crust of
- the globe threatened to burst up, the granite foundations to come
- together with a crash, the fissure through which we were helplessly
- driven would be filled up, the void would be full of crushed
- fragments of rock, and we poor wretched mortals were to be buried and
- annihilated in this dreadful consummation.
- "My uncle," I cried, "we are lost now, utterly lost!"
- "What are you in a fright about now?" was the calm rejoinder. "What
- is the matter with you?"
- "The matter? Look at those quaking walls! look at those shivering
- rocks. Don't you feel the burning heat? Don't you see how the water
- boils and bubbles? Are you blind to the dense vapours and steam
- growing thicker and denser every minute? See this agitated compass
- needle. It is an earthquake that is threatening us."
- My undaunted uncle calmly shook his head.
- "Do you think," said he, "an earthquake is coming?"
- "I do."
- "Well, I think you are mistaken."
- "What! don't you recognise the symptoms?"
- "Of an earthquake? no! I am looking out for something better."
- "What can you mean? Explain?"
- "It is an eruption, Axel."
- "An eruption! Do you mean to affirm that we are running up the shaft
- of a volcano?"
- "I believe we are," said the indomitable Professor with an air of
- perfect self-possession; "and it is the best thing that could
- possibly happen to us under our circumstances."
- The best thing! Was my uncle stark mad? What did the man mean? and
- what was the use of saying facetious things at a time like this?
- "What!" I shouted. "Are we being taken up in an eruption? Our fate
- has flung us here among burning lavas, molten rocks, boiling waters,
- and all kinds of volcanic matter; we are going to be pitched out,
- expelled, tossed up, vomited, spit out high into the air, along with
- fragments of rock, showers of ashes and scoria, in the midst of a
- towering rush of smoke and flames; and it is the best thing that
- could happen to us!"
- "Yes," replied the Professor, eyeing me over his spectacles, "I don't
- see any other way of reaching the surface of the earth."
- I pass rapidly over the thousand ideas which passed through my mind.
- My uncle was right, undoubtedly right; and never had he seemed to me
- more daring and more confirmed in his notions than at this moment
- when he was calmly contemplating the chances of being shot out of a
- volcano!
- In the meantime up we went; the night passed away in continual
- ascent; the din and uproar around us became more and more
- intensified; I was stifled and stunned; I thought my last hour was
- approaching; and yet imagination is such a strong thing that even in
- this supreme hour I was occupied with strange and almost childish
- speculations. But I was the victim, not the master, of my own
- thoughts.
- It was very evident that we were being hurried upward upon the crest
- of a wave of eruption; beneath our raft were boiling waters, and
- under these the more sluggish lava was working its way up in a heated
- mass, together with shoals of fragments of rock which, when they
- arrived at the crater, would be dispersed in all directions high and
- low. We were imprisoned in the shaft or chimney of some volcano.
- There was no room to doubt of that.
- But this time, instead of Sn�fell, an extinct volcano, we were inside
- one in full activity. I wondered, therefore, where could this
- mountain be, and in what part of the world we were to be shot out.
- I made no doubt but that it would be in some northern region. Before
- its disorders set in, the needle had never deviated from that
- direction. From Cape Saknussemm we had been carried due north for
- hundreds of leagues. Were we under Iceland again? Were we destined to
- be thrown up out of Hecla, or by which of the seven other fiery
- craters in that island? Within a radius of five hundred leagues to
- the west I remembered under this parallel of latitude only the
- imperfectly known volcanoes of the north-east coast of America. To
- the east there was only one in the 80th degree of north latitude, the
- Esk in Jan Mayen Island, not far from Spitzbergen! Certainly there
- was no lack of craters, and there were some capacious enough to throw
- out a whole army! But I wanted to know which of them was to serve us
- for an exit from the inner world.
- Towards morning the ascending movement became accelerated. If the
- heat increased, instead of diminishing, as we approached nearer to
- the surface of the globe, this effect was due to local causes alone,
- and those volcanic. The manner of our locomotion left no doubt in my
- mind. An enormous force, a force of hundreds of atmospheres,
- generated by the extreme pressure of confined vapours, was driving us
- irresistibly forward. But to what numberless dangers it exposed us!
- Soon lurid lights began to penetrate the vertical gallery which
- widened as we went up. Right and left I could see deep channels, like
- huge tunnels, out of which escaped dense volumes of smoke; tongues of
- fire lapped the walls, which crackled and sputtered under the intense
- heat.
- "See, see, my uncle!" I cried.
- "Well, those are only sulphureous flames and vapours, which one must
- expect to see in an eruption. They are quite natural."
- "But suppose they should wrap us round."
- "But they won't wrap us round."
- "But we shall be stifled."
- "We shall not be stifled at all. The gallery is widening, and if it
- becomes necessary, we shall abandon the raft, and creep into a
- crevice."
- "But the water--the rising water?"
- "There is no more water, Axel; only a lava paste, which is bearing us
- up on its surface to the top of the crater."
- The liquid column had indeed disappeared, to give place to dense and
- still boiling eruptive matter of all kinds. The temperature was
- becoming unbearable. A thermometer exposed to this atmosphere would
- have marked 150�. The perspiration streamed from my body. But for the
- rapidity of our ascent we should have been suffocated.
- But the Professor gave up his idea of abandoning the raft, and it was
- well he did. However roughly joined together, those planks afforded
- us a firmer support than we could have found anywhere else.
- About eight in the morning a new incident occurred. The upward
- movement ceased. The raft lay motionless.
- "What is this?" I asked, shaken by this sudden stoppage as if by a
- shock.
- "It is a halt," replied my uncle.
- "Is the eruption checked?" I asked.
- "I hope not."
- I rose, and tried to look around me. Perhaps the raft itself, stopped
- in its course by a projection, was staying the volcanic torrent. If
- this were the case we should have to release it as soon as possible.
- But it was not so. The blast of ashes, scorix, and rubbish had ceased
- to rise.
- "Has the eruption stopped?" I cried.
- "Ah!" said my uncle between his clenched teeth, "you are afraid. But
- don't alarm yourself--this lull cannot last long. It has lasted now
- five minutes, and in a short time we shall resume our journey to the
- mouth of the crater."
- As he spoke, the Professor continued to consult his chronometer, and
- he was again right in his prognostications. The raft was soon hurried
- and driven forward with a rapid but irregular movement, which lasted
- about ten minutes, and then stopped again.
- "Very good," said my uncle; "in ten minutes more we shall be off
- again, for our present business lies with an intermittent volcano. It
- gives us time now and then to take breath."
- This was perfectly true. When the ten minutes were over we started
- off again with renewed and increased speed. We were obliged to lay
- fast hold of the planks of the raft, not to be thrown off. Then again
- the paroxysm was over.
- I have since reflected upon this singular phenomenon without being
- able to explain it. At any rate it was clear that we were not in the
- main shaft of the volcano, but in a lateral gallery where there were
- felt recurrent tunes of reaction.
- How often this operation was repeated I cannot say. All I know is,
- that at each fresh impulse we were hurled forward with a greatly
- increased force, and we seemed as if we were mere projectiles. During
- the short halts we were stifled with the heat; whilst we were being
- projected forward the hot air almost stopped my breath. I thought for
- a moment how delightful it would be to find myself carried suddenly
- into the arctic regions, with a cold 30� below the freezing point. My
- overheated brain conjured up visions of white plains of cool snow,
- where I might roll and allay my feverish heat. Little by little my
- brain, weakened by so many constantly repeated shocks, seemed to be
- giving way altogether. But for the strong arm of Hans I should more
- than once have had my head broken against the granite roof of our
- burning dungeon.
- I have therefore no exact recollection of what took place during the
- following hours. I have a confused impression left of continuous
- explosions, loud detonations, a general shaking of the rocks all
- around us, and of a spinning movement with which our raft was once
- whirled helplessly round. It rocked upon the lava torrent, amidst a
- dense fall of ashes. Snorting flames darted their fiery tongues at
- us. There were wild, fierce puffs of stormy wind from below,
- resembling the blasts of vast iron furnaces blowing all at one time;
- and I caught a glimpse of the figure of Hans lighted up by the fire;
- and all the feeling I had left was just what I imagine must be the
- feeling of an unhappy criminal doomed to be blown away alive from the
- mouth of a cannon, just before the trigger is pulled, and the flying
- limbs and rags of flesh and skin fill the quivering air and spatter
- the blood-stained ground.
- CHAPTER XLIV.
- SUNNY LANDS IN THE BLUE MEDITERRANEAN
- When I opened my eyes again I felt myself grasped by the belt with
- the strong hand of our guide. With the other arm he supported my
- uncle. I was not seriously hurt, but I was shaken and bruised and
- battered all over. I found myself lying on the sloping side of a
- mountain only two yards from a gaping gulf, which would have
- swallowed me up had I leaned at all that way. Hans had saved me from
- death whilst I lay rolling on the edge of the crater.
- "Where are we?" asked my uncle irascibly, as if he felt much injured
- by being landed upon the earth again.
- The hunter shook his head in token of complete ignorance.
- "Is it Iceland?" I asked.
- "_Nej,_" replied Hans.
- "What! Not Iceland?" cried the Professor.
- "Hans must be mistaken," I said, raising myself up.
- This was our final surprise after all the astonishing events of our
- wonderful journey. I expected to see a white cone covered with the
- eternal snow of ages rising from the midst of the barren deserts of
- the icy north, faintly lighted with the pale rays of the arctic sun,
- far away in the highest latitudes known; but contrary to all our
- expectations, my uncle, the Icelander, and myself were sitting
- half-way down a mountain baked under the burning rays of a southern
- sun, which was blistering us with the heat, and blinding us with the
- fierce light of his nearly vertical rays.
- I could not believe my own eyes; but the heated air and the sensation
- of burning left me no room for doubt. We had come out of the crater
- half naked, and the radiant orb to which we had been strangers for
- two months was lavishing upon us out of his blazing splendours more
- of his light and heat than we were able to receive with comfort.
- When my eyes had become accustomed to the bright light to which they
- had been so long strangers, I began to use them to set my imagination
- right. At least I would have it to be Spitzbergen, and I was in no
- humour to give up this notion.
- The Professor was the first to speak, and said:
- "Well, this is not much like Iceland."
- "But is it Jan Mayen?" I asked.
- "Nor that either," he answered. "This is no northern mountain; here
- are no granite peaks capped with snow. Look, Axel, look!"
- Above our heads, at a height of five hundred feet or more, we saw the
- crater of a volcano, through which, at intervals of fifteen minutes
- or so, there issued with loud explosions lofty columns of fire,
- mingled with pumice stones, ashes, and flowing lava. I could feel the
- heaving of the mountain, which seemed to breathe like a huge whale,
- and puff out fire and wind from its vast blowholes. Beneath, down a
- pretty steep declivity, ran streams of lava for eight or nine hundred
- feet, giving the mountain a height of about 1,300 or 1,400 feet. But
- the base of the mountain was hidden in a perfect bower of rich
- verdure, amongst which I was able to distinguish the olive, the fig,
- and vines, covered with their luscious purple bunches.
- I was forced to confess that there was nothing arctic here.
- When the eye passed beyond these green surroundings it rested on a
- wide, blue expanse of sea or lake, which appeared to enclose this
- enchanting island, within a compass of only a few leagues. Eastward
- lay a pretty little white seaport town or village, with a few houses
- scattered around it, and in the harbour of which a few vessels of
- peculiar rig were gently swayed by the softly swelling waves. Beyond
- it, groups of islets rose from the smooth, blue waters, but in such
- numbers that they seemed to dot the sea like a shoal. To the west
- distant coasts lined the dim horizon, on some rose blue mountains of
- smooth, undulating forms; on a more distant coast arose a prodigious
- cone crowned on its summit with a snowy plume of white cloud. To the
- northward lay spread a vast sheet of water, sparkling and dancing
- under the hot, bright rays, the uniformity broken here and there by
- the topmast of a gallant ship appearing above the horizon, or a
- swelling sail moving slowly before the wind.
- This unforeseen spectacle was most charming to eyes long used to
- underground darkness.
- "Where are we? Where are we?" I asked faintly.
- Hans closed his eyes with lazy indifference. What did it matter to
- him? My uncle looked round with dumb surprise.
- "Well, whatever mountain this may be," he said at last, "it is very
- hot here. The explosions are going on still, and I don't think it
- would look well to have come out by an eruption, and then to get our
- heads broken by bits of falling rock. Let us get down. Then we shall
- know better what we are about. Besides, I am starving, and parching
- with thirst."
- Decidedly the Professor was not given to contemplation. For my part,
- I could for another hour or two have forgotten my hunger and my
- fatigue to enjoy the lovely scene before me; but I had to follow my
- companions.
- The slope of the volcano was in many places of great steepness. We
- slid down screes of ashes, carefully avoiding the lava streams which
- glided sluggishly by us like fiery serpents. As we went I chattered
- and asked all sorts of questions as to our whereabouts, for I was too
- much excited not to talk a great deal.
- "We are in Asia," I cried, "on the coasts of India, in the Malay
- Islands, or in Oceania. We have passed through half the globe, and
- come out nearly at the antipodes."
- "But the compass?" said my uncle.
- "Ay, the compass!" I said, greatly puzzled. "According to the compass
- we have gone northward."
- "Has it lied?"
- "Surely not. Could it lie?"
- "Unless, indeed, this is the North Pole!"
- "Oh, no, it is not the Pole; but--"
- Well, here was something that baffled us completely. I could not tell
- what to say.
- But now we were coming into that delightful greenery, and I was
- suffering greatly from hunger and thirst. Happily, after two hours'
- walking, a charming country lay open before us, covered with olive
- trees, pomegranate trees, and delicious vines, all of which seemed to
- belong to anybody who pleased to claim them. Besides, in our state of
- destitution and famine we were not likely to be particular. Oh, the
- inexpressible pleasure of pressing those cool, sweet fruits to our
- lips, and eating grapes by mouthfuls off the rich, full bunches! Not
- far off, in the grass, under the delicious shade of the trees, I
- discovered a spring of fresh, cool water, in which we luxuriously
- bathed our faces, hands, and feet.
- Whilst we were thus enjoying the sweets of repose a child appeared
- out of a grove of olive trees.
- "Ah!" I cried, "here is an inhabitant of this happy land!"
- It was but a poor boy, miserably ill-clad, a sufferer from poverty,
- and our aspect seemed to alarm him a great deal; in fact, only half
- clothed, with ragged hair and beards, we were a suspicious-looking
- party; and if the people of the country knew anything about thieves,
- we were very likely to frighten them.
- Just as the poor little wretch was going to take to his heels, Hans
- caught hold of him, and brought him to us, kicking and struggling.
- My uncle began to encourage him as well as he could, and said to him
- in good German:
- "_Was heiszt diesen Berg, mein Knablein? Sage mir geschwind!_"
- ("What is this mountain called, my little friend?")
- The child made no answer.
- "Very well," said my uncle. "I infer that we are not in Germany."
- He put the same question in English.
- We got no forwarder. I was a good deal puzzled.
- "Is the child dumb?" cried the Professor, who, proud of his knowledge
- of many languages, now tried French: "_Comment appellet-on cette
- montagne, mon enfant?_"
- Silence still.
- "Now let us try Italian," said my uncle; and he said:
- "_Dove noi siamo?_"
- "Yes, where are we?" I impatiently repeated.
- But there was no answer still.
- "Will you speak when you are told?" exclaimed my uncle, shaking the
- urchin by the ears. "_Come si noma questa isola?_"
- "STROMBOLI," replied the little herdboy, slipping out of Hans' hands,
- and scudding into the plain across the olive trees.
- We were hardly thinking of that. Stromboli! What an effect this
- unexpected name produced upon my mind! We were in the midst of the
- Mediterranean Sea, on an island of the �olian archipelago, in the
- ancient Strongyle, where �olus kept the winds and the storms chained
- up, to be let loose at his will. And those distant blue mountains in
- the east were the mountains of Calabria. And that threatening volcano
- far away in the south was the fierce Etna.
- "Stromboli, Stromboli!" I repeated.
- My uncle kept time to my exclamations with hands and feet, as well as
- with words. We seemed to be chanting in chorus!
- What a journey we had accomplished! How marvellous! Having entered by
- one volcano, we had issued out of another more than two thousand
- miles from Sn�fell and from that barren, far-away Iceland! The
- strange chances of our expedition had carried us into the heart of
- the fairest region in the world. We had exchanged the bleak regions
- of perpetual snow and of impenetrable barriers of ice for those of
- brightness and 'the rich hues of all glorious things.' We had left
- over our heads the murky sky and cold fogs of the frigid zone to
- revel under the azure sky of Italy!
- After our delicious repast of fruits and cold, clear water we set off
- again to reach the port of Stromboli. It would not have been wise to
- tell how we came there. The superstitious Italians would have set us
- down for fire-devils vomited out of hell; so we presented ourselves
- in the humble guise of shipwrecked mariners. It was not so glorious,
- but it was safer.
- On my way I could hear my uncle murmuring: "But the compass! that
- compass! It pointed due north. How are we to explain that fact?"
- "My opinion is," I replied disdainfully, "that it is best not to
- explain it. That is the easiest way to shelve the difficulty."
- "Indeed, sir! The occupant of a professorial chair at the Johann�um
- unable to explain the reason of a cosmical phenomenon! Why, it would
- be simply disgraceful!"
- And as he spoke, my uncle, half undressed, in rags, a perfect
- scarecrow, with his leathern belt around him, settling his spectacles
- upon his nose and looking learned and imposing, was himself again,
- the terrible German professor of mineralogy.
- One hour after we had left the grove of olives, we arrived at the
- little port of San Vicenzo, where Hans claimed his thirteen week's
- wages, which was counted out to him with a hearty shaking of hands
- all round.
- At that moment, if he did not share our natural emotion, at least his
- countenance expanded in a manner very unusual with him, and while
- with the ends of his fingers he lightly pressed our hands, I believe
- he smiled.
- CHAPTER XLV.
- ALL'S WELL THAT ENDS WELL
- Such is the conclusion of a history which I cannot expect everybody
- to believe, for some people will believe nothing against the
- testimony of their own experience. However, I am indifferent to their
- incredulity, and they may believe as much or as little as they please.
- The Stromboliotes received us kindly as shipwrecked mariners. They
- gave us food and clothing. After waiting forty-eight hours, on the 31
- st of August, a small craft took us to Messina, where a few days'
- rest completely removed the effect of our fatigues.
- On Friday, September the 4th, we embarked on the steamer Volturno,
- employed by the French Messageries Imperiales, and in three days more
- we were at Marseilles, having no care on our minds except that
- abominable deceitful compass, which we had mislaid somewhere and
- could not now examine; but its inexplicable behaviour exercised my
- mind fearfully. On the 9th of September, in the evening, we arrived
- at Hamburg.
- I cannot describe to you the astonishment of Martha or the joy of
- Gr�uben.
- "Now you are a hero, Axel," said to me my blushing _fianc�e,_ my
- betrothed, "you will not leave me again!"
- I looked tenderly upon her, and she smiled through her tears.
- How can I describe the extraordinary sensation produced by the return
- of Professor Liedenbrock? Thanks to Martha's ineradicable tattling,
- the news that the Professor had gone to discover a way to the centre
- of the earth had spread over the whole civilised world. People
- refused to believe it, and when they saw him they would not believe
- him any the more. Still, the appearance of Hans, and sundry pieces of
- intelligence derived from Iceland, tended to shake the confidence of
- the unbelievers.
- Then my uncle became a great man, and I was now the nephew of a great
- man--which is not a privilege to be despised.
- Hamburg gave a grand fete in our honour. A public audience was given
- to the Professor at the Johann�um, at which he told all about our
- expedition, with only one omission, the unexplained and inexplicable
- behaviour of our compass. On the same day, with much state, he
- deposited in the archives of the city the now famous document of
- Saknussemm, and expressed his regret that circumstances over which he
- had no control had prevented him from following to the very centre of
- the earth the track of the learned Icelander. He was modest
- notwithstanding his glory, and he was all the more famous for his
- humility.
- So much honour could not but excite envy. There were those who envied
- him his fame; and as his theories, resting upon known facts, were in
- opposition to the systems of science upon the question of the central
- fire, he sustained with his pen and by his voice remarkable
- discussions with the learned of every country.
- For my part I cannot agree with his theory of gradual cooling: in
- spite of what I have seen and felt, I believe, and always shall
- believe, in the central heat. But I admit that certain circumstances
- not yet sufficiently understood may tend to modify in places the
- action of natural phenomena.
- While these questions were being debated with great animation, my
- uncle met with a real sorrow. Our faithful Hans, in spite of our
- entreaties, had left Hamburg; the man to whom we owed all our success
- and our lives too would not suffer us to reward him as we could have
- wished. He was seized with the mal de pays, a complaint for which we
- have not even a name in English.
- "_Farval,_" said he one day; and with that simple word he left us and
- sailed for Rejkiavik, which he reached in safety.
- We were strongly attached to our brave eider-down hunter; though far
- away in the remotest north, he will never be forgotten by those whose
- lives he protected, and certainly I shall not fail to endeavour to
- see him once more before I die.
- To conclude, I have to add that this 'Journey into the Interior of
- the Earth' created a wonderful sensation in the world. It was
- translated into all civilised languages. The leading newspapers
- extracted the most interesting passages, which were commented upon,
- picked to pieces, discussed, attacked, and defended with equal
- enthusiasm and determination, both by believers and sceptics. Rare
- privilege! my uncle enjoyed during his lifetime the glory he had
- deservedly won; and he may even boast the distinguished honour of an
- offer from Mr. Barnum, to exhibit him on most advantageous terms in
- all the principal cities in the United States!
- But there was one 'dead fly' amidst all this glory and honour; one
- fact, one incident, of the journey remained a mystery. Now to a man
- eminent for his learning, an unexplained phenomenon is an unbearable
- hardship. Well! it was yet reserved for my uncle to be completely
- happy.
- One day, while arranging a collection of minerals in his cabinet, I
- noticed in a corner this unhappy compass, which we had long lost
- sight of; I opened it, and began to watch it.
- It had been in that corner for six months, little mindful of the
- trouble it was giving.
- Suddenly, to my intense astonishment, I noticed a strange fact, and I
- uttered a cry of surprise.
- "What is the matter?" my uncle asked.
- "That compass!"
- "Well?"
- "See, its poles are reversed!"
- "Reversed?"
- "Yes, they point the wrong way."
- My uncle looked, he compared, and the house shook with his triumphant
- leap of exultation.
- A light broke in upon his spirit and mine.
- "See there," he cried, as soon as he was able to speak. "After our
- arrival at Cape Saknussemm the north pole of the needle of this
- confounded compass began to point south instead of north."
- "Evidently!"
- "Here, then, is the explanation of our mistake. But what phenomenon
- could have caused this reversal of the poles?"
- "The reason is evident, uncle."
- "Tell me, then, Axel."
- "During the electric storm on the Liedenbrock sea, that ball of fire,
- which magnetised all the iron on board, reversed the poles of our
- magnet!"
- "Aha! aha!" shouted the Professor with a loud laugh. "So it was just
- an electric joke!"
- From that day forth the Professor was the most glorious of savants,
- and I was the happiest of men; for my pretty Virlandaise, resigning
- her place as ward, took her position in the old house on the
- K�nigstrasse in the double capacity of niece to my uncle and wife to
- a certain happy youth. What is the need of adding that the
- illustrious Otto Liedenbrock, corresponding member of all the
- scientific, geographical, and mineralogical societies of all the
- civilised world, was now her uncle and mine?
- End of the Project Gutenberg EBook of A Journey to the Interior of the Earth, by
- Jules Verne
- *** END OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK A JOURNEY TO THE INTERIOR ***
- ***** This file should be named 3748-8.txt or 3748-8.zip *****
- This and all associated files of various formats will be found in:
- http://www.gutenberg.org/3/7/4/3748/
- Produced by Norman M. Wolcott.
- Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions
- will be renamed.
- Creating the works from public domain print editions means that no
- one owns a United States copyright in these works, so the Foundation
- (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United States without
- permission and without paying copyright royalties. Special rules,
- set forth in the General Terms of Use part of this license, apply to
- copying and distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works to
- protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm concept and trademark. Project
- Gutenberg is a registered trademark, and may not be used if you
- charge for the eBooks, unless you receive specific permission. If you
- do not charge anything for copies of this eBook, complying with the
- rules is very easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose
- such as creation of derivative works, reports, performances and
- research. They may be modified and printed and given away--you may do
- practically ANYTHING with public domain eBooks. Redistribution is
- subject to the trademark license, especially commercial
- redistribution.
- *** START: FULL LICENSE ***
- THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
- PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
- To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
- distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
- (or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project
- Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full Project
- Gutenberg-tm License (available with this file or online at
- http://gutenberg.org/license).
- Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project Gutenberg-tm
- electronic works
- 1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
- electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
- and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
- (trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
- the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or destroy
- all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your possession.
- If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a Project
- Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound by the
- terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the person or
- entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph 1.E.8.
- 1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be
- used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
- agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
- things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
- even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
- paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
- Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this agreement
- and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
- works. See paragraph 1.E below.
- 1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the Foundation"
- or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection of Project
- Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual works in the
- collection are in the public domain in the United States. If an
- individual work is in the public domain in the United States and you are
- located in the United States, we do not claim a right to prevent you from
- copying, distributing, performing, displaying or creating derivative
- works based on the work as long as all references to Project Gutenberg
- are removed. Of course, we hope that you will support the Project
- Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting free access to electronic works by
- freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm works in compliance with the terms of
- this agreement for keeping the Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with
- the work. You can easily comply with the terms of this agreement by
- keeping this work in the same format with its attached full Project
- Gutenberg-tm License when you share it without charge with others.
- 1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
- what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are in
- a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States, check
- the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this agreement
- before downloading, copying, displaying, performing, distributing or
- creating derivative works based on this work or any other Project
- Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no representations concerning
- the copyright status of any work in any country outside the United
- States.
- 1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
- 1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other immediate
- access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear prominently
- whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work on which the
- phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the phrase "Project
- Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed, performed, viewed,
- copied or distributed:
- This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with
- almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or
- re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included
- with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org
- 1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is derived
- from the public domain (does not contain a notice indicating that it is
- posted with permission of the copyright holder), the work can be copied
- and distributed to anyone in the United States without paying any fees
- or charges. If you are redistributing or providing access to a work
- with the phrase "Project Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the
- work, you must comply either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1
- through 1.E.7 or obtain permission for the use of the work and the
- Project Gutenberg-tm trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or
- 1.E.9.
- 1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
- with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
- must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any additional
- terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms will be linked
- to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works posted with the
- permission of the copyright holder found at the beginning of this work.
- 1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
- License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
- work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
- 1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
- electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
- prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
- active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
- Gutenberg-tm License.
- 1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
- compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including any
- word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access to or
- distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format other than
- "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official version
- posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site (www.gutenberg.org),
- you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense to the user, provide a
- copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means of obtaining a copy upon
- request, of the work in its original "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other
- form. Any alternate format must include the full Project Gutenberg-tm
- License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
- 1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
- performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
- unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
- 1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
- access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works provided
- that
- - You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
- the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
- you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is
- owed to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he
- has agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the
- Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments
- must be paid within 60 days following each date on which you
- prepare (or are legally required to prepare) your periodic tax
- returns. Royalty payments should be clearly marked as such and
- sent to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the
- address specified in Section 4, "Information about donations to
- the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation."
- - You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
- you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
- does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
- License. You must require such a user to return or
- destroy all copies of the works possessed in a physical medium
- and discontinue all use of and all access to other copies of
- Project Gutenberg-tm works.
- - You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of any
- money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
- electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days
- of receipt of the work.
- - You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
- distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
- 1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project Gutenberg-tm
- electronic work or group of works on different terms than are set
- forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing from
- both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and Michael
- Hart, the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark. Contact the
- Foundation as set forth in Section 3 below.
- 1.F.
- 1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
- effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
- public domain works in creating the Project Gutenberg-tm
- collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
- works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may contain
- "Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate or
- corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other intellectual
- property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or other medium, a
- computer virus, or computer codes that damage or cannot be read by
- your equipment.
- 1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right
- of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
- Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
- Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
- liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
- fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
- LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
- PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
- TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
- LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
- INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
- DAMAGE.
- 1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
- defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
- receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
- written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
- received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium with
- your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you with
- the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in lieu of a
- refund. If you received the work electronically, the person or entity
- providing it to you may choose to give you a second opportunity to
- receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If the second copy
- is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing without further
- opportunities to fix the problem.
- 1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
- in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS' WITH NO OTHER
- WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT LIMITED TO
- WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTIBILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
- 1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
- warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of damages.
- If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement violates the
- law of the state applicable to this agreement, the agreement shall be
- interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or limitation permitted by
- the applicable state law. The invalidity or unenforceability of any
- provision of this agreement shall not void the remaining provisions.
- 1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
- trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
- providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in accordance
- with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the production,
- promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works,
- harmless from all liability, costs and expenses, including legal fees,
- that arise directly or indirectly from any of the following which you do
- or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this or any Project Gutenberg-tm
- work, (b) alteration, modification, or additions or deletions to any
- Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any Defect you cause.
- Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
- Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
- electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of computers
- including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It exists
- because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations from
- people in all walks of life.
- Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
- assistance they need, are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's
- goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
- remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
- and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future generations.
- To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
- and how your efforts and donations can help, see Sections 3 and 4
- and the Foundation web page at http://www.pglaf.org.
- Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive
- Foundation
- The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit
- 501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
- state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
- Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
- number is 64-6221541. Its 501(c)(3) letter is posted at
- http://pglaf.org/fundraising. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg
- Literary Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent
- permitted by U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
- The Foundation's principal office is located at 4557 Melan Dr. S.
- Fairbanks, AK, 99712., but its volunteers and employees are scattered
- throughout numerous locations. Its business office is located at
- 809 North 1500 West, Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887, email
- business@pglaf.org. Email contact links and up to date contact
- information can be found at the Foundation's web site and official
- page at http://pglaf.org
- For additional contact information:
- Dr. Gregory B. Newby
- Chief Executive and Director
- gbnewby@pglaf.org
- Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
- Literary Archive Foundation
- Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide
- spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
- increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
- freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest
- array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
- ($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
- status with the IRS.
- The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
- charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
- States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
- considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
- with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
- where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To
- SEND DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any
- particular state visit http://pglaf.org
- While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
- have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
- against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
- approach us with offers to donate.
- International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
- any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
- outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
- Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation
- methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
- ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations.
- To donate, please visit: http://pglaf.org/donate
- Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
- works.
- Professor Michael S. Hart is the originator of the Project Gutenberg-tm
- concept of a library of electronic works that could be freely shared
- with anyone. For thirty years, he produced and distributed Project
- Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of volunteer support.
- Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
- editions, all of which are confirmed as Public Domain in the U.S.
- unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not necessarily
- keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper edition.
- Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search facility:
- http://www.gutenberg.org
- This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
- including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
- Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
- subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
|